home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1994-01-01 | 385.0 KB | 6,580 lines | [TEXT/MSWD] |
- 1881
- THE PRINCE AND THE PAUPER
- A TALE FOR YOUNG PEOPLE OF ALL AGES
- by Mark Twain
-
-
- PREFACE
-
- I will set down a tale as it was told to me by one who had it of
- his father, which latter had it of his father, this last having in
- like manner had it of his father- and so on, back and still back,
- three hundred years and more, the fathers transmitting it to the
- sons and so preserving it. It may be history, it may be only legend, a
- tradition. It may have happened, it may not have happened: but it
- could have happened. It may be that the wise and the learned
- believed it in the old days; it may be that only the unlearned and the
- simple loved it and credited it.
-
- Hugh Latimer, Bishop of Worcester, to Lord Cromwell, on the
- birth of the Prince of Wales (afterward Edward VI).
-
- [From the National Manuscripts preserved by the British
- Government]
-
- Ryght honorable, Salutem in Christo Jesu, and Syr here ys no lesse
- joynge and rejossynge in thes partees for the byrth of our prynce,
- hoom we hungurde for so longe, then ther was (I trow), inter vicinos
- att the byrth of S. I. Baptyste, as thys berer, Master Erance, can
- telle you. Gode gyffe us alle grace, to yelde dew thankes to our Lorde
- Gode, Gode of Inglonde, for verely He hathe shoyd Hym selff Gode of
- Inglond, or rather an Inglyssh Gode, yf we consydyr and pondyr welle
- alle Hys procedynges with us from tyme to tyme. He hath overcumme alle
- our yllness with Hys excedynge goodnesse, so that we ar now moor
- then compelled to serve Hym, seke Hys glory, promott Hys wurde, yf the
- Devylle of alle Devylles be natt in us. We have now the stoppe of
- vayne trustes ande the stey of vayne expectations; lett us alle pray
- for hys preservation. And I for my partt wylle wyssh that hys Grace
- allways have, and evyn now from the begynynge, Governares,
- Instructores and offyceres of ryght jugmente, ne optimum ingenium
- non optima educatione depravetur.
- Butt whatt a grett fowlle am I! So, whatt devotione shoyth many
- tymys butt lytelle dyscretione! Ande thus the Gode of Inglonde be ever
- with you in alle your procedynges.
-
- The 19 of October.
-
- Yours H. L. b. of Wurcestere, now att Hartlebury.
-
- Yf you wolde excytt thys berere to be moore hartye ayen the
- abuse of ymagry or mor forwarde to promotte the veryte, ytt myght
- doo goode. Natt that ytt came of me butt of your selffe, &c.
-
- The quality of mercy...
- is twice bless'd;
- It blesseth him that gives, and him that takes
- 'Tis mightiest in the mightiest: it becomes
- The throned monarch better than his crown.
-
- MERCHANT OF VENICE
- CHAPTER I
- The Birth of the Prince and the Pauper
-
- IN the ancient city of London, on a certain autumn day in the
- second quarter of the sixteenth century, a boy was born to a poor
- family of the name of Canty, who did not want him. On the same day
- another English child was born to a rich family of the name of
- Tudor, who did want him. All England wanted him too. England had so
- longed for him, and hoped for him, and prayed God for him, that, now
- that he was really come, the people went nearly mad for joy. Mere
- acquaintances hugged and kissed each other and cried. Everybody took a
- holiday, and high and low, rich and poor, feasted and danced and sang,
- and got very mellow; and they kept this up for days and nights
- together. By day, London was a sight to see, with gay banners waving
- from every balcony and housetop, and splendid pageants marching along.
- By night, it was again a sight to see, with its great bonfires at
- every corner, and its troops of revelers making merry around them.
- There was no talk in all England but of the new baby, Edward Tudor,
- Prince of Wales, who lay lapped in silks and satins, unconscious of
- all this fuss, and not knowing that great lords and ladies were
- tending him and watching over him- and not caring, either. But there
- was no talk about the other baby, Tom Canty, lapped in his poor
- rags, except among the family of paupers whom he had just come to
- trouble with his presence.
- CHAPTER II
- Tom's Early Life
-
- LET us skip a number of years.
- London was fifteen hundred years old, and was a great town- for
- that day. It had a hundred thousand inhabitants- some think double
- as many. The streets were very narrow, and crooked, and dirty,
- especially in the part where Tom Canty lived, which was not far from
- London Bridge. The houses were of wood, with the second story
- projecting over the first, and the third sticking its elbows out
- beyond the second. The higher the houses grew, the broader they
- grew. They were skeletons of strong crisscross beams, with solid
- material between, coated with plaster. The beams were painted red or
- blue or black, according to the owner's taste, and this gave the
- houses a very picturesque look. The windows were small, glazed with
- little diamond-shaped panes, and they opened outward, on hinges,
- like doors.
- The house which Tom's father lived in was up a foul little
- pocket called Offal Court, out of Pudding Lane. It was small, decayed,
- and rickety, but it was packed full of wretchedly poor families.
- Canty's tribe occupied a room on the third floor. The mother and
- father had a sort of bedstead in the corner; but Tom, his grandmother,
- and his two sisters, Bet and Nan, were not restricted- they had all
- the floor to themselves, and might sleep where they chose. There
- were the remains of a blanket or two, and some bundles of ancient
- and dirty straw, but these could not rightly be called beds, for
- they were not organized; they were kicked into a general pile
- mornings, and selections made from the mass at night, for service.
- Bet and Nan were fifteen years old- twins. They were
- good-hearted girls, unclean, clothed in rags, and profoundly ignorant.
- Their mother was like them. But the father and the grandmother were
- a couple of fiends. They got drunk whenever they could; then they
- fought each other or anybody else who came in the way; they cursed and
- swore always, drunk or sober; John Canty was a thief, and his mother a
- beggar. They made beggars of the children, but failed to make
- thieves of them. Among, but not of, the dreadful rabble that inhabited
- the house, was a good old priest whom the king had turned out of house
- and home with a pension of a few farthings, and he used to get the
- children aside and teach them right ways secretly. Father Andrew
- also taught Tom a little Latin, and how to read and write; and would
- have done the same for the girls, but they were afraid of the jeers of
- their friends, who could not have endured such a queer
- accomplishment in them.
- All Offal Court was just such another hive as Canty's house.
- Drunkenness, riot, and brawling were the order there, every night
- and nearly all night long. Broken heads were as common as hunger in
- that place. Yet little Tom was not unhappy. He had a hard time of
- it, but did not know it. It was the sort of time that all the Offal
- Court boys had, therefore he supposed it was the correct and
- comfortable thing. When he came home empty-handed at night, he knew
- his father would curse him and thrash him first, and that when he
- was done the awful grandmother would do it all over again and
- improve on it; and that away in the night his starving mother would
- slip to him stealthily with any miserable scrap of crust she had
- been able to save for him by going hungry herself, notwithstanding she
- was often caught in that sort of treason and soundly beaten for it
- by her husband.
- No, Tom's life went along well enough, especially in summer. He
- only begged just enough to save himself, for the laws against
- mendicancy were stringent, and the penalties heavy; so he put in a
- good deal of his time listening to good Father Andrew's charming old
- tales and legends about giants and fairies, dwarfs and genii, and
- enchanted castles, and gorgeous kings and princes. His head grew to be
- full of these wonderful things, and many a night as he lay in the dark
- on his scant and offensive straw, tired, hungry, and smarting from a
- thrashing, he unleashed his imagination and soon forgot his aches
- and pains in delicious picturings to himself of the charmed life of
- a petted prince in a regal palace. One desire came in time to haunt
- him day and night; it was to see a real prince, with his own eyes.
- He spoke of it once to some of his Offal Court comrades; but they
- jeered him and scoffed him so unmercifully that he was glad to keep
- his dream to himself after that.
- He often read the priest's old books and got him to explain and
- enlarge upon them. His dreamings and readings worked certain changes
- in him by and by. His dream-people were so fine that he grew to lament
- his shabby clothing and his dirt, and to wish to be clean and better
- clad. He went on playing in the mud just the same, and enjoying it,
- too; but instead of splashing around in the Thames solely for the
- fun of it, he began to find an added value in it because of the
- washings and cleansings it afforded.
- Tom could always find something going on around the Maypole in
- Cheapside, and at the fairs; and now and then he and the rest of
- London had a chance to see a military parade when some famous
- unfortunate was carried prisoner to the Tower, by land or boat. One
- summer's day he saw poor Anne Askew and three men burned at the
- stake in Smithfield, and heard an ex-bishop preach a sermon to them
- which did not interest him. Yes, Tom's life was varied and pleasant
- enough, on the whole.
- By and by Tom's reading and dreaming about princely life wrought
- such a strong effect upon him that he began to act the prince,
- unconsciously. His speech and manners became curiously ceremonious and
- courtly, to the vast admiration and amusement of his intimates. But
- Tom's influence among these young people began to grow now, day by
- day; and in time he came to be looked up to by them with a sort of
- wondering awe, as a superior being. He seemed to know so much! and
- he could do such marvellous things! and withal, he was so deep and
- wise! Tom's remarks and Tom's performances were reported by the boys
- to their elders; and these, also, presently began to discuss Tom
- Canty, and to regard him as a most gifted and extraordinary
- creature. Full-grown people brought their perplexities to Tom for
- solution, and were often astonished at the wit and wisdom of his
- decisions. In fact, he was become a hero to all who knew him except
- his own family- these only saw nothing in him.
- Privately, after a while, Tom organized a royal court! He was
- the prince; his special comrades were guards, chamberlains, equerries,
- lords and ladies in waiting, and the royal family. Daily the mock
- prince was received with elaborate ceremonials borrowed by Tom from
- his romantic readings; daily the great affairs of the mimic kingdom
- were discussed in the royal council, and daily his mimic highness
- issued decrees to his imaginary armies, navies, and viceroyalties.
- After which he would go forth in his rags and beg a few farthings,
- eat his poor crust, take his customary cuffs and abuse, and then
- stretch himself upon his handful of foul straw, and resume his empty
- grandeurs in his dreams.
- And still his desire to look just once upon a real prince, in
- the flesh, grew upon him, day by day, and week by week, until at
- last it absorbed all other desires, and became the one passion of
- his life.
- One January day, on his usual begging tour, he tramped
- despondently up and down the region round about Mincing Lane and
- Little East Cheap, hour after hour, barefooted and cold, looking in at
- cook-shop windows and longing for the dreadful pork-pies and other
- deadly inventions displayed there- for to him these were dainties
- fit for the angels; that is, judging by the smell, they were- for it
- had never been his good luck to own and eat one. There was a cold
- drizzle of rain; the atmosphere was murky; it was a melancholy day. At
- night Tom reached home so wet and tired and hungry that it was not
- possible for his father and grandmother to observe his forlorn
- condition and not be moved- after their fashion; wherefore they gave
- him a brisk cuffing at once and sent him to bed. For a long time his
- pain and hunger, and the swearing and fighting going on in the
- building, kept him awake; but at last his thoughts drifted away to
- far, romantic lands, and he fell asleep in the company of jeweled
- and gilded princelings who lived in vast palaces, and had servants
- salaaming before them or flying to execute their orders. And then,
- as usual, he dreamed that he was a princeling himself.
- All night long the glories of his royal estate shone upon him;
- he moved among great lords and ladies, in a blaze of light,
- breathing perfumes, drinking in delicious music, and answering the
- reverent obeisances of the glittering throng as it parted to make
- way for him, with here a smile, and there a nod of his princely head.
- And when he awoke in the morning and looked upon the
- wretchedness about him, his dream had had its usual effect- it had
- intensified the sordidness of his surroundings a thousandfold. Then
- came bitterness, and heartbreak, and tears.
- CHAPTER III
- Tom's Meeting with the Prince
-
- TOM got up hungry, and sauntered hungry away, but with his
- thoughts busy with the shadowy splendors of his night's dreams. He
- wandered here and there in the city, hardly noticing where he was
- going, or what was happening around him. People jostled him and some
- gave him rough speech; but it was all lost on the musing boy. By and
- by he found himself at Temple Bar, the farthest from home he had
- ever traveled in that direction. He stopped and considered a moment,
- then fell into his imaginings again, and passed on outside the walls
- of London. The Strand had ceased to be a country-road then, and
- regarded itself as a street, but by a strained construction; for,
- though there was a tolerably compact row of houses on one side of
- it, there were only some scattering great buildings on the other,
- these being palaces of rich nobles, with ample and beautiful grounds
- stretching to the river- grounds that are now closely packed with grim
- acres of brick and stone.
- Tom discovered Charing Village presently, and rested himself at
- the beautiful cross built there by a bereaved king of earlier days;
- then idled down a quiet, lovely road, past the great cardinal's
- stately palace, toward a far more mighty and majestic palace beyond-
- Westminster. Tom stared in glad wonder at the vast pile of masonry,
- the wide-spreading wings, the frowning bastions and turrets, the
- huge stone gateways, with its gilded bars and its magnificent array of
- colossal granite lions, and the other signs and symbols of English
- royalty. Was the desire of his soul to be satisfied at last? Here,
- indeed, was a king's palace. Might he not hope to see a prince now-
- a prince of flesh and blood, if Heaven were willing?
- At each side of the gilded gate stood a living statue, that is
- to say, an erect and stately and motionless man-at-arms, clad from
- head to heel in shining steel armor. At a respectful distance were
- many country-folk, and people from the city, waiting for any chance
- glimpse of royalty that might offer. Splendid carriages, with splendid
- people in them and splendid servants outside, were arriving and
- departing by several other noble gateways that pierced the royal
- inclosure.
- Poor little Tom, in his rags, approached, and was moving slowly
- and timidly past the sentinels, with a beating heart and a rising
- hope, when all at once he caught sight through the golden bars of a
- spectacle that almost made him shout for joy. Within was a comely boy,
- tanned and brown with sturdy outdoors sports and exercises, whose
- clothing was all of lovely silks and satins, shining with jewels; at
- his hip a little jeweled sword and dagger; dainty buskins on his feet,
- with red heels; and on his head a jaunty crimson cap, with drooping
- plumes fastened with a great sparkling gem. Several gorgeous gentlemen
- stood near- his servants, without a doubt. Oh! he was a prince- a
- prince, a living prince, a real prince- without the shadow of a
- question; and the prayer of the pauper boy's heart was answered at
- last.
- Tom's breath came quick and short with excitement, and his eyes
- grew big with wonder and delight. Everything gave way in his mind
- instantly to one desire: that was to get close to the prince, and have
- a good, devouring look at him. Before he knew what he was about, he
- had his face against the gate-bars. The next instant one of the
- soldiers snatched him rudely away, and sent him spinning among the
- gaping crowd of country gawks and London idlers. The soldier said:
- 'Mind thy manners, thou young beggar!'
- The crowd jeered and laughed; but the young prince sprang to the
- gate with his face flushed, and his eyes flashing with indignation,
- and cried out:
- 'How dar'st thou use a poor lad like that! How dar'st thou use the
- king my father's meanest subject so! Open the gates, and let him in!'
- You should have seen that fickle crowd snatch off their hats then.
- You should have heard them cheer, and shout, 'Long live the Prince
- of Wales!'
- The soldiers presented arms with their halberds, opened the gates,
- and presented again as the little Prince of Poverty passed in, in
- his fluttering rags, to join hands with the Prince of Limitless
- Plenty. Edward Tudor said:
- 'Thou lookest tired and hungry; thou'st been treated ill. Come
- with me.'
- Half a dozen attendants sprang forward to- I don't know what;
- interfere, no doubt. But they were waved aside with a right royal
- gesture, and they stopped stock still where they were like so many
- statues. Edward took Tom to a rich apartment in the palace, which he
- called his cabinet. By his command a repast was brought such as Tom
- had never encountered before except in books. The prince, with
- princely delicacy and breeding, sent away the servants, so that his
- humble guest might not be embarrassed by their critical presence; then
- he sat near by, and asked questions while Tom ate.
- 'What is thy name, lad?'
- 'Tom Canty, an it please thee, sir.'
- ''Tis an odd one. Where dost live?'
- 'In the city, please thee, sir. Offal Court, out of Pudding Lane.'
- 'Offal Court! Truly, 'tis another odd one. Hast parents?'
- 'Parents have I, sir, and a grandam likewise that is but
- indifferently precious to me, God forgive me if it be offense to say
- it- also twin sisters, Nan and Bet.'
- 'Then is thy grandam not overkind to thee, I take it.'
- 'Neither to any other is she, so please your worship. She hath a
- wicked heart, and worketh evil all her days.'
- 'Doth she mistreat thee?'
- 'There be times that she stayeth her hand, being asleep or
- overcome with drink; but when she hath her judgment clear again, she
- maketh it up to me with goodly beatings.'
- A fierce look came into the little prince's eyes, and he cried
- out:
- 'What! Beatings?'
- 'O, indeed, yes, please you, sir.'
- 'Beatings!- and thou so frail and little. Hark ye: before the
- night come, she shall hie her to the Tower. The king my father-'
- 'In sooth, you forget, sir, her low degree. The Tower is for the
- great alone.'
- 'True, indeed. I had not thought of that. I will consider of her
- punishment. Is thy father kind to thee?'
- 'Not more than Gammer Canty, sir.'
- 'Fathers be alike, mayhap. Mine hath not a doll's temper. He
- smiteth with a heavy hand, yet spareth me; he spareth me not always
- with his tongue, though, sooth to say. How doth thy mother use thee?'
- 'She is good, sir, and giveth me neither sorrow nor pain of any
- sort. And Nan and Bet are like to her in this.'
- 'How old be these?'
- 'Fifteen, an it please you, sir.'
- 'The Lady Elizabeth, my sister, is fourteen and the Lady Jane
- Grey, my cousin, is of mine own age, and comely and gracious withal;
- but my sister the Lady Mary, with her gloomy mien and- Look you: do
- thy sisters forbid their servants to smile, lest the sin destroy their
- souls?'
- 'They? Oh, dost think, sir, that they have servants?'
- The little prince contemplated the little pauper gravely a moment,
- then said:
- 'And prithee, why not? Who helpeth them undress at night? who
- attireth them when they rise?'
- 'None, sir. Wouldst have them take off their garment, and sleep
- without- like the beasts?'
- 'Their garment! Have they but one?'
- 'Ah, good your worship, what would they do with more? Truly,
- they have not two bodies each.'
- 'It is a quaint and marvelous thought! Thy pardon, I had not meant
- to laugh. But thy good Nan and thy Bet shall have raiment and
- lackeys enow, and that soon, too: my cofferer shall look to it. No,
- thank me not; 'tis nothing. Thou speakest well; thou hast an easy
- grace in it. Art learned?'
- 'I know not if I am or not, sir. The good priest that is called
- Father Andrew taught me, of his kindness, from his books.'
- 'Know'st thou the Latin?'
- 'But scantily, sir, I doubt.'
- 'Learn it, lad: 'tis hard only at first. The Greek is harder;
- but neither these nor any tongues else, I think, are hard to the
- Lady Elizabeth and my cousin. Thou shouldst hear those damsels at
- it! But tell me of thy Offal Court. Hast thou a pleasant life there?'
- 'In truth, yes, so please you, sir, save when one is hungry. There
- be Punch-and-Judy shows, and monkeys- oh, such antic creatures! and so
- bravely dressed!- and there be plays wherein they that play do shout
- and fight till all are slain, and 'tis so fine to see, and costeth but
- a farthing- albeit 'tis main hard to get the farthing, please your
- worship.'
- 'Tell me more.'
- 'We lads of Offal Court do strive against each other with the
- cudgel, like to the fashion of the 'prentices, sometimes.'
- The prince's eyes flashed. Said he:
- 'Marry, that would I not mislike. Tell me more.'
- 'We strive in races, sir, to see who of us shall be fleetest.'
- 'That would I like also. Speak on.'
- 'In summer, sir, we wade and swim in the canals and in the
- river, and each doth duck his neighbor, and spatter him with water,
- and dive and shout and tumble and-'
- ''Twould be worth my father's kingdom but to enjoy it once!
- Prithee go on.'
- 'We dance and sing about the Maypole in Cheapside; we play in
- the sand, each covering his neighbor up; and times we make mud pastry-
- oh, the lovely mud, it hath not its like for delightfulness in all the
- world!- we do fairly wallow in the mud, sir, saving your worship's
- presence.'
- 'Oh, prithee, say no more, 'tis glorious! If that I could but
- clothe me in raiment like to thine, and strip my feet, and revel in
- the mud once, just once, with none to rebuke me or forbid, meseemeth I
- could forego the crown!'
- 'And if that I could clothe me once, sweet sir, as thou art
- clad- just once-'
- 'Oho, wouldst like it? Then so shall it be. Doff thy rags, and don
- these splendors, lad! It is a brief happiness, but will be not less
- keen for that. We will have it while we may, and change again before
- any come to molest.'
- A few minutes later the little Prince of Wales was garlanded
- with Tom's fluttering odds and ends, and the little Prince of
- Pauperdom was tricked out in the gaudy plumage of royalty. The two
- went and stood side by side before a great mirror, and lo, a
- miracle: there did not seem to have been any change made! They
- stared at each other, then at the glass, then at each other again.
- At last the puzzled princeling said:
- 'What dost thou make of this?'
- 'Ah, good your worship, require me not to answer. It is not meet
- that one of my degree should utter the thing.'
- 'Then will I utter it. Thou hast the same hair, the same eyes, the
- same voice and manner, the same form and stature, the same face and
- countenance, that I bear. Fared we forth naked, there is none could
- say which was you, and which the Prince of Wales. And, now that I am
- clothed as thou wert clothed, it seemeth I should be able the more
- nearly to feel as thou didst when the brute soldier- Hark ye, is not
- this a bruise upon your hand?'
- 'Yes; but it is a slight thing, and your worship knoweth that
- the poor man-at-arms-'
- 'Peace! It was a shameful thing and a cruel!' cried the little
- prince, stamping his bare foot. 'If the king- Stir not a step till I
- come again! It is a command!'
- In a moment he had snatched up and put away an article of national
- importance that lay upon a table, and was out at the door and flying
- through the palace grounds in his bannered rags, with a hot face and
- glowing eyes. As soon as he reached the great gate, he seized the
- bars, and tried to shake them, shouting: 'Open! Unbar the gates!'
- The soldier that had maltreated Tom obeyed promptly; and as the
- prince burst through the portal, half smothered with royal wrath,
- the soldier fetched him a sounding box on the ear that sent him
- whirling to the roadway, and said:
- 'Take that, thou beggar's spawn for what thou got'st me from his
- Highness!'
- The crowd roared with laughter. The prince picked himself out of
- the mud, and made fiercely at the sentry, shouting:
- 'I am the Prince of Wales, my person is sacred; and thou shalt
- hang for laying thy hand upon me!'
- The soldier brought his halberd to a present-arms and said
- mockingly:
- 'I salute your gracious Highness.' Then angrily, 'Be off, thou
- crazy rubbish!'
- Here the jeering crowd closed around the poor little prince, and
- hustled him far down the road, hooting him, and shouting. 'Way for his
- royal Highness! way for the Prince of Wales!'
- CHAPTER IV
- The Prince's Troubles Begin
-
- AFTER hours of persistent pursuit and persecution, the little
- prince was at last deserted by the rabble and left to himself. As long
- as he had been able to rage against the mob, and threaten it
- royally, and royally utter commands that were good stuff to laugh
- at, he was very entertaining; but when weariness finally forced him to
- be silent, he was no longer of use to his tormentors, and they
- sought amusement elsewhere. He looked about him now, but could not
- recognize the locality. He was within the city of London- that was all
- he knew. He moved on, aimlessly, and in a little while the houses
- thinned, and the passers-by were infrequent. He bathed his bleeding
- feet in the brook which flowed then where Farringdon Street now is;
- rested a few moments, then passed on, and presently came upon a
- great space with only a few scattered houses in it, and a prodigious
- church. He recognized this church. Scaffoldings were about,
- everywhere, and swarms of workmen; for it was undergoing elaborate
- repairs. The prince took heart at once- he felt that his troubles were
- at an end now. He said to himself, 'It is the ancient Grey Friars'
- church, which the king my father hath taken from the monks and given
- for a home forever for poor and forsaken children, and new-named it
- Christ's church. Right gladly will they serve the son of him who
- hath done so generously by them- and the more that that son is himself
- as poor and as forlorn as any that be sheltered here this day, or ever
- shall be.'
- He was soon in the midst of a crowd of boys who were running,
- jumping, playing at ball and leap-frog and otherwise disporting
- themselves, and right noisily, too. They were all dressed alike, and
- in the fashion which in that day prevailed among serving-men and
- 'prentices'*- that is to say, each had on the crown of his head a flat
- black cap about the size of a saucer, which was not useful as a
- covering, it being of such scanty dimensions, neither was it
- ornamental; from beneath it the hair fell, unparted, to the middle
- of the forehead, and was cropped straight around; a clerical band at
- the neck; a blue gown that fitted closely and hung as low as the knees
- or lower; full sleeves; a broad red belt; bright yellow stockings,
- gartered above the knees; low shoes with large metal buckles. It was a
- sufficiently ugly costume.
- The boys stopped their play and flocked about the prince, who said
- with native dignity:
- 'Good lads, say to your master that Edward Prince of Wales
- desireth speech with him.'
- A great shout went up at this, and one rude fellow said:
- 'Marry, art thou his grace's messenger, beggar?'
- The prince's face flushed with anger, and his ready hand flew to
- his hip, but there was nothing there. There was a storm of laughter,
- and one boy said:
- 'Didst mark that? He fancied he had a sword- belike he is the
- prince himself.'
- This sally brought more laughter. Poor Edward drew himself up
- proudly and said:
- 'I am the prince; and it ill beseemeth you that feed upon the king
- my father's bounty to use me so.'
- This was vastly enjoyed, as the laughter testified. The youth
- who had first spoken shouted to his comrades:
- 'Ho, swine, slaves, pensioners of his grace's princely father,
- where be your manners? Down on your marrow bones, all of ye, and do
- reverence to his kingly port and royal rags!'
- With boisterous mirth they dropped upon their knees in a body
- and did mock homage to their prey. The prince spurned the nearest
- boy with his foot, and said fiercely:
- 'Take thou that, till the morrow come and I build thee a gibbet!'
- Ah, but this was not a joke- this was going beyond fun. The
- laughter ceased on the instant and fury took its place. A dozen
- shouted:
- 'Hale him forth! To the horse-pond, to the horse-pond! Where be
- the dogs? Ho, there, Lion! ho, Fangs!'
- Then followed such a thing as England had never seen before- the
- sacred person of the heir to the throne rudely buffeted by plebeian
- hands, and set upon and torn by dogs.
- As night drew to a close that day, the prince found himself far
- down in the close-built portion of the city. His body was bruised, his
- hands were bleeding, and his rags were all besmirched with mud. He
- wandered on and on, and grew more and more bewildered, and so tired
- and faint he could hardly drag one foot after the other. He had ceased
- to ask questions of any one, since they brought him only insult
- instead of information. He kept muttering to himself, 'Offal Court-
- that is the name; if I can but find it before my strength is wholly
- spent and I drop, then am I saved- for his people will take me to
- the palace and prove that I am none of theirs, but the true prince,
- and I shall have mine own again.' And now and then his mind reverted
- to his treatment by those rude Christ's Hospital boys, and he said,
- 'When I am king, they shall not have bread and shelter only, but
- also teachings out of books; for a full belly is little worth where
- the mind is starved, and the heart. I will keep this diligently in
- my remembrance, that this day's lesson be not lost upon me, and my
- people suffer thereby; for learning softeneth the heart and breedeth
- gentleness and charity.'*(2)
- The lights began to twinkle, it came on to rain, the wind rose,
- and a raw and gusty night set in. The houseless prince, the homeless
- heir to the throne of England, still moved on, drifting deeper into
- the maze of squalid alleys where the swarming hives of poverty and
- misery were massed together.
- Suddenly a great drunken ruffian collared him and said:
- 'Out to this time of night again, and hast not brought a
- farthing home, I warrant me! If it be so, an I do not break all the
- bones in thy lean body, then am I not John Canty, but some other.'
- The prince twisted himself loose, unconsciously brushed his
- profaned shoulder, and eagerly said:
- 'Oh, art his father, truly? Sweet heaven grant it be so- then wilt
- thou fetch him away and restore me!'
- 'His father? I know not what thou mean'st; I but know I am thy
- father, as thou shalt soon have cause to-'
- 'Oh, jest not, palter not, delay not!- I am worn, I am wounded,
- I can bear no more. Take me to the king my father, and he will make
- thee rich beyond thy wildest dreams. Believe me, man, believe me! I
- speak no lie, but only the truth!- put forth thy hand and save me! I
- am indeed the Prince of Wales!'
- The man stared down, stupefied, upon the lad, then shook his
- head and muttered:
- 'Gone stark mad as any Tom o' Bedlam!'- then collared him once
- more, and said with a coarse laugh and an oath, 'But mad or no mad,
- I and thy Gammer Canty will soon find where the soft places in thy
- bones lie, or I'm no true man!'
- With this he dragged the frantic and struggling prince away, and
- disappeared up a front court followed by a delighted and noisy swarm
- of human vermin.
- CHAPTER V
- Tom as a Patrician
-
- TOM CANTY, left alone in the prince's cabinet, made good use of
- his opportunity. He turned himself this way and that before the
- great mirror, admiring his finery; then walked away, imitating the
- prince's high-bred carriage, and still observing results in the glass.
- Next he drew the beautiful sword, and bowed, kissing the blade, and
- laying it across his breast, as he had seen a noble knight do, by
- way of salute to the lieutenant of the Tower, five or six weeks
- before, when delivering the great lords of Norfolk and Surrey into his
- hands for captivity. Tom played with the jeweled dagger that hung upon
- his thigh; he examined the costly and exquisite ornaments of the room;
- he tried each of the sumptuous chairs, and thought how proud he
- would be if the Offal Court herd could only peep in and see him in his
- grandeur. He wondered if they would believe the marvelous tale he
- should tell when he got home, or if they would shake their heads,
- and say his overtaxed imagination had at last upset his reason.
- At the end of half an hour it suddenly occurred to him that the
- prince was gone a long time; then right away he began to feel
- lonely; very soon he fell to listening and longing, and ceased to
- toy with the pretty things about him; he grew uneasy, then restless,
- then distressed. Suppose some one should come, and catch him in the
- prince's clothes, and the prince not there to explain. Might they
- not hang him at once, and inquire into his case afterward? He had
- heard that the great were prompt about small matters. His fears rose
- higher and higher; and trembling he softly opened the door to the
- ante-chamber, resolved to fly and seek the prince, and through him,
- protection and release. Six gorgeous gentlemen-servants and two
- young pages of high degree, clothed like butterflies, sprung to
- their feet, and bowed low before him. He stepped quickly back, and
- shut the door. He said:
- 'Oh, they mock at me! They will go and tell. Oh! why came I here
- to cast away my life?'
- He walked up and down the floor, filled with nameless fears,
- listening, starting at every trifling sound. Presently the door
- swung open, and a silken page said:
- 'The Lady Jane Grey.'
- The door closed, and a sweet young girl, richly clad, bounded
- toward him.
- But she stopped suddenly, and said in a distressed voice:
- 'Oh, what aileth thee, my lord?'
- Tom's breath was nearly failing him; but he made shift to
- stammer out:
- 'Ah, be merciful, thou! In sooth I am no lord, but only poor Tom
- Canty of Offal Court in the city. Prithee let me see the prince, and
- he will of his grace restore to me my rags, and let me hence unhurt.
- Oh, be thou merciful, and save me!'
- By this time the boy was on his knees, and supplicating with his
- eyes and uplifted hands as well as with his tongue. The young girl
- seemed horror-stricken. She cried out:
- 'Oh, my lord, on thy knees? and to me!'
- Then she fled away in fright; and Tom, smitten with despair,
- sank down, murmuring:
- 'There is no help, there is no hope. Now will they come and take
- me.'
- Whilst he lay there benumbed with terror, dreadful tidings were
- speeding through the palace. The whisper, for it was whispered always,
- flew from menial to menial, from lord to lady, down all the long
- corridors, from story to story, from saloon to saloon, 'The prince
- hath gone mad, the prince hath gone mad!' Soon every saloon, every
- marble hall, had its groups of glittering lords and ladies, and
- other groups of dazzling lesser folk, talking earnestly together in
- whispers, and every face had in it dismay. Presently a splendid
- official came marching by these groups, making solemn proclamation:
-
- 'IN THE NAME OF THE KING
-
- Let none list to this false and foolish matter, upon pain of death,
- nor discuss the same, nor carry it abroad. In the name of the king!'
-
- The whisperings ceased as suddenly as if the whisperers had been
- stricken dumb.
- Soon there was a general buzz along the corridors, of 'The prince!
- See, the prince comes!'
- Poor Tom came slowly walking past the low-bowing groups, trying to
- bow in return, and meekly gazing upon his strange surroundings with
- bewildered and pathetic eyes. Great nobles walked upon each side of
- him, making him lean upon them, and so steady his steps. Behind him
- followed the court physicians and some servants.
- Presently Tom found himself in a noble apartment of the palace,
- and heard the door close behind him. Around him stood those who had
- come with him.
- Before him, at a little distance, reclined a very large and very
- fat man, with a wide, pulpy face, and a stern expression. His large
- head was very gray; and his whiskers, which he wore only around his
- face, like a frame, were gray also. His clothing was of rich stuff,
- but old, and slightly frayed in places. One of his swollen legs had
- a pillow under it, and was wrapped in bandages. There was silence now;
- and there was no head there but was bent in reverence, except this
- man's. This stern-countenanced invalid was the dread Henry VIII. He
- said- and his face grew gentle as he began to speak:
- 'How now, my lord Edward, my prince? Hast been minded to cozen me,
- the good king thy father, who loveth thee, and kindly useth thee, with
- a sorry jest?'
- Poor Tom was listening, as well as his dazed faculties would let
- him, to the beginning of this speech; but when the words 'me the
- good king' fell upon his ear, his face blanched, and he dropped as
- instantly upon his knees as if a shot had brought him there. Lifting
- up his hands, he exclaimed:
- 'Thou the king? Then am I undone indeed!'
- This speech seemed to stun the king. His eyes wandered from face
- to face aimlessly, then rested, bewildered, upon the boy before him.
- Then he said in a tone of deep disappointment:
- 'Alack, I had believed the rumor disproportioned to the truth; but
- I fear me 'tis not so.' He breathed a heavy sigh, and said in a gentle
- voice, 'Come to thy father, child; thou art not well.'
- Tom was assisted to his feet, and approached the Majesty of
- England, humble and trembling. The king took the frightened face
- between his hands, and gazed earnestly and lovingly into it awhile, as
- if seeking some grateful sign of returning reason there, then
- pressed the curly head against his breast, and patted it tenderly.
- Presently he said:
- 'Dost thou know thy father, child? Break not mine old heart; say
- thou know'st me. Thou dost know me, dost thou not?'
- 'Yea; thou art my dread lord the king, whom God preserve.'
- 'True, true- that is well- be comforted, tremble not so; there
- is none here who would hurt thee; there is none here but loves thee.
- Thou art better now; thy ill dream passeth- is't not so? And thou
- knowest thyself now also- is't not so? Thou wilt not miscall thyself
- again, as they say thou didst a little while agone?'
- 'I pray thee of thy grace believe me, I did but speak the truth,
- most dread lord; for I am the meanest among thy subjects, being a
- pauper born, and 'tis by a sore mischance and accident I am here,
- albeit I was therein nothing blameful. I am but young to die, and thou
- canst save me with one little word. Oh, speak it, sir!'
- 'Die? Talk not so, sweet prince- peace, peace, to thy troubled
- heart- thou shalt not die!'
- Tom dropped upon his knees with a glad cry:
- 'God requite thy mercy, oh my king, and save thee long to bless
- thy land!' Then springing up, he turned a joyful face toward the two
- lords in waiting, and exclaimed, 'Thou heard'st it! I am not to die:
- the king hath said it!' There was no movement, save that all bowed
- with grave respect; but no one spoke. He hesitated, a little confused,
- then turned timidly toward the king, saying, 'I may go now?'
- 'Go? Surely, if thou desirest. But why not tarry yet a little?
- Whither wouldst go?'
- Tom dropped his eyes, and answered humbly:
- 'Peradventure I mistook; but I did think me free, and so was I
- moved to seek again the kennel where I was born and bred to misery,
- yet which harboreth my mother and my sisters, and so is home to me;
- whereas these pomps and splendors whereunto I am not used- oh,
- please you, sir, to let me go!'
- The king was silent and thoughtful awhile, and his face betrayed a
- growing distress and uneasiness. Presently he said, with something
- of hope in his voice:
- 'Perchance he is but mad upon this one strain and hath his wits
- unmarred as toucheth other matter. God send it may be so! We will make
- trial.'
- Then he asked Tom a question in Latin, and Tom answered him lamely
- in the same tongue. The King was delighted, and showed it. The lords
- and doctors manifested their gratification also.
- The king said:
- ''Twas not according to his schooling and ability, but sheweth
- that his mind is but diseased, not stricken fatally. How say you,
- sir?'
- The physician addressed bowed low, and replied:
- 'It jumpeth with mine own conviction, sire, that thou hast divined
- aright.'
- The king looked pleased with this encouragement, coming as it
- did from so excellent authority, and continued with good heart:
- 'Now mark ye all: we will try him further.'
- He put a question to Tom in French. Tom stood silent a moment,
- embarrassed by having so many eyes centered upon him, then said
- diffidently:
- 'I have no knowledge of this tongue, so please your majesty.'
- The king fell back upon his couch. The attendants flew to his
- assistance; but he put them aside, and said:
- 'Trouble me not- it is nothing but a scurvy faintness. Raise me!
- there, 'tis sufficient. Come hither, child; there, rest thy poor
- troubled head upon thy father's heart, and be at peace. Thou'lt soon
- be well; 'tis but a passing fantasy. Fear thou not; thou'lt soon be
- well.' Then he turned toward the company; his gentle manner changed,
- and baleful lightnings began to play from his eyes. He said:
- 'List ye all! This my son is mad; but it is not permanent.
- Overstudy hath done this, and somewhat too much of confinement. Away
- with his books and teachers! see ye to it. Pleasure him with sports,
- beguile him in wholesome ways, so that his health come again.' He
- raised himself higher still and went on with energy. 'He is mad; but
- he is my son, and England's heir; and, mad or sane, still shall he
- reign! And hear ye further, and proclaim it; whoso speaketh of this
- his distemper worketh against the peace and order of these realms, and
- shall to the gallows!... Give me to drink- I burn: This sorrow sappeth
- my strength.... There, take away the cup.... Support me. There, that
- is well. Mad, is he? Were he a thousand times mad, yet is he Prince of
- Wales, and I the king will confirm it. This very morrow shall he be
- installed in his princely dignity in due and ancient form. Take
- instant order for it, my Lord Hertford.'
- One of the nobles knelt at the royal couch, and said:
- 'The king's majesty knoweth that the Hereditary Great Marshal of
- England lieth attainted in the Tower. It were not meet that one
- attainted-'
- 'Peace! Insult not mine ears with his hated name. Is this man to
- live forever? Am I to be balked of my will? Is the prince to tarry
- uninstalled, because, forsooth, the realm lacketh an earl marshal free
- of treasonable taint to invest him with his honors? No, by the
- splendor of God! Warn my parliament to bring me Norfolk's doom
- before the sun rise again, else shall they answer for it
- grievously!*(3)
- Lord Hertford said:
- 'The king's will is law'; and, rising, returned to his former
- place.
- Gradually the wrath faded out of the old king's face, and he said:
- 'Kiss me, my prince. There... what fearest thou? Am I not thy
- loving father?'
- 'Thou art good to me that am unworthy, O mighty and gracious lord;
- that in truth I know. But- but- it grieveth me to think of him that is
- to die, and-'
- 'Ah, 'tis like thee, 'tis like thee! I know thy heart is still the
- same, even though thy mind hath suffered hurt, for thou wert ever of a
- gentle spirit. But this duke standeth between thee and thine honors: I
- will have another in his stead that shall bring no taint to his
- great office. Comfort thee, my prince: trouble not thy poor head
- with this matter.'
- 'But is it not I that speed him hence, my liege? How long might he
- not live, but for me?'
- 'Take no thought of him, my prince: he is not worthy. Kiss me once
- again, and go to thy trifles and amusements; for my malady distresseth
- me. I am aweary, and would rest. Go with thine uncle Hertford and
- thy people, and come again when my body is refreshed.'
- Tom, heavy-hearted, was conducted from the presence, for this last
- sentence was a death-blow to the hope he had cherished that now he
- would be set free. Once more he heard the buzz of low voices
- exclaiming, 'The prince, the prince comes!'
- His spirits sank lower and lower as he moved between the
- glittering files of bowing courtiers; for he recognized that he was
- indeed a captive now, and might remain forever shut up in this
- gilded cage, a forlorn and friendless prince, except God in his
- mercy take pity on him and set him free.
- And, turn where he would, he seemed to see floating in the air the
- severed head and the remembered face of the great Duke of Norfolk, the
- eyes fixed on him reproachfully.
- His old dreams had been so pleasant; but this reality was so
- dreary!
- CHAPTER VI
- Tom Recieves Instructions
-
- TOM was conducted to the principal apartment of a noble suite, and
- made to sit down- a thing which he was loath to do, since there were
- elderly men and men of high degree about him. He begged them to be
- seated, also, but they only bowed their thanks or murmured them, and
- remained standing. He would have insisted, but his 'uncle,' the Earl
- of Hertford, whispered in his ear:
- 'Prithee, insist not, my lord; it is not meet that they sit in thy
- presence.'
- The Lord St. John was announced, and, after making obeisance to
- Tom, he said:
- 'I come upon the king's errand, concerning a matter which
- requireth privacy. Will it please your royal highness to dismiss all
- that attend you here, save my lord the Earl of Hertford?'
- Observing that Tom did not seem to know how to proceed, Hertford
- whispered him to make a sign with his hand and not trouble himself
- to speak unless he chose. When the waiting gentlemen had retired, Lord
- St. John said:
- 'His majesty commandeth, that for due and weighty reasons of
- state, the prince's grace shall hide his infirmity in all ways that be
- within his power, till it be passed and he be as he was before. To
- wit, that he shall deny to none that he is the true prince, and heir
- to England's greatness; that he shall uphold his princely dignity, and
- shall receive, without word or sign of protest, that reverence and
- observance which unto it do appertain of right and ancient usage; that
- he shall cease to speak to any of that lowly birth and life his malady
- hath conjured out of the unwholesome imaginings of o'erwrought
- fancy; that he shall strive with diligence to bring unto his memory
- again those faces which he was wont to know- and where he faileth he
- shall hold his peace, neither betraying by semblance of surprise, or
- other sign, that he hath forgot; that upon occasions of state,
- whensoever any matter shall perplex him as to the thing he should do
- or the utterance he should make, he shall show naught of unrest to the
- curious that look on, but take advice in that matter of the Lord
- Hertford, or my humble self, which are commanded of the king to be
- upon this service and close at call, till this commandment be
- dissolved. Thus saith the king's majesty, who sendeth greeting to your
- royal highness and prayeth that God will of His mercy quickly heal you
- and have you now and ever in His holy keeping.'
- The Lord St. John made reverence and stood aside. Tom replied,
- resignedly:
- 'The king hath said it. None may palter with the king's command,
- or fit it to his ease, where it doth chafe, with deft evasions. The
- king shall be obeyed.'
- Lord Hertford said:
- 'Touching the king's majesty's ordainment concerning books and
- such like serious matters, it may peradventure please your highness to
- ease your time with lightsome entertainment, lest you go wearied to
- the banquet and suffer harm thereby.'
- Tom's face showed inquiring surprise; and a blush followed when he
- saw Lord St. John's eyes bent sorrowfully upon him. His lordship said:
- 'Thy memory still wrongeth thee, and thou hast shown surprise- but
- suffer it not to trouble thee, for 'tis a matter that will not bide,
- but depart with thy mending malady. My Lord of Hertford speaketh of
- the city's banquet which the king's majesty did promise two months
- flown, your highness should attend. Thou recallest it now?'
- 'It grieves me to confess it had indeed escaped me,' said Tom,
- in a hesitating voice; and blushed again.
- At that moment the Lady Elizabeth and the Lady Jane Grey were
- announced. The two lords exchanged significant glances, and Hertford
- stepped quickly toward the door. As the young girls passed him, he
- said in a low voice:
- 'I pray ye, ladies, seem not to observe his humors, nor show
- surprise when his memory doth lapse- it will grieve you to note how it
- doth stick at every trifle.'
- Meanwhile Lord St. John was saying in Tom's ear:
- 'Please you, sir, keep diligently in mind his majesty's desire.
- Remember all thou canst- seem to remember all else. Let them not
- perceive that thou art much changed from thy wont, for thou knowest
- how tenderly thy old playfellows bear thee in their hearts and how
- 'twould grieve them. Art willing, sir, that I remain?- and thine
- uncle?'
- Tom signified assent with a gesture and a murmured word, for he
- was already learning, and in his simple heart was resolved to acquit
- himself as best he might according to the king's command.
- In spite of every precaution, the conversation among the young
- people became a little embarrassing at times. More than once, in
- truth, Tom was near to breaking down and confessing himself unequal to
- his tremendous part; but the tact of the Princess Elizabeth saved him,
- or a word from one or the other of the vigilant lords, thrown in
- apparently by chance, had the same happy effect. Once the little
- Lady Jane turned to Tom and dismayed him with this question:
- 'Hast paid thy duty to the queen's majesty today, my lord?'
- Tom hesitated, looked distressed, and was about to stammer out
- something at hazard when Lord St. John took the word and answered
- for him with the easy grace of a courtier accustomed to encounter
- delicate difficulties and to be ready for them:
- 'He hath indeed, madam, and she did greatly hearten him, as
- touching his majesty's condition; is it not so, your highness?'
- Tom mumbled something that stood for assent, but felt that he
- was getting upon dangerous ground. Somewhat later it was mentioned
- that Tom was to study no more at present, whereupon her little
- ladyship exclaimed:
- ''Tis a pity, 'tis such a pity! Thou were proceeding bravely.
- But bide thy time in patience; it will not be for long. Thou'lt yet be
- graced with learning like thy father, and make thy tongue master of as
- many languages as his, good my prince.'
- 'My father!' cried Tom, off his guard for the moment. 'I trow he
- cannot speak his own so that any but the swine that wallow in the
- sties may tell his meaning; and as for learning of any sort soever-'
- He looked up and encountered a solemn warning in my Lord St.
- John's eyes.
- He stopped, blushed, then continued low and sadly: 'Ah, my
- malady persecuteth me again, and my mind wandereth. I meant the king's
- grace no irreverence.'
- 'We know it, sir,' said the Princess Elizabeth, taking her
- 'brother's' hand between her two palms, respectfully but
- caressingly; 'trouble not thyself as to that. The fault is none of
- thine, but thy distemper's.'
- 'Thou'rt a gentle comforter, sweet lady,' said Tom, gratefully,
- 'and my heart moveth me to thank thee for't, an I may be so bold.'
- Once the giddy little Lady Jane fired a simple Greek phrase at
- Tom. The Princess Elizabeth's quick eye saw by the serene blankness of
- the target's front that the shaft was overshot; so she tranquilly
- delivered a return volley of sounding Greek on Tom's behalf, and
- then straightway changed the talk to other matters.
- Time wore on pleasantly, and likewise smoothly, on the whole.
- Snags and sand-bars grew less and less frequent, and Tom grew more and
- more at his ease, seeing that all were so lovingly bent upon helping
- him and overlooking his mistakes. When it came out that the little
- ladies were to accompany him to the Lord Mayor's banquet in the
- evening, his heart gave a bound of relief and delight, for he felt
- that he should not be friendless now, among that multitude of
- strangers, whereas, an hour earlier, the idea of their going with
- him would have been an insupportable terror to him.
- Tom's guardian angels, the two lords, had had less comfort in
- the interview than the other parties to it. They felt much as if
- they were piloting a great ship through a dangerous channel; they were
- on the alert constantly, and found their office no child's play.
- Wherefore, at last, when the ladies' visit was drawing to a close
- and the Lord Guilford Dudley was announced, they not only felt that
- their charge had been sufficiently taxed for the present, but also
- that they themselves were not in the best condition to take their ship
- back and make their anxious voyage all over again. So they
- respectfully advised Tom to excuse himself, which he was very glad
- to do, although a slight shade of disappointment might have been
- observed upon my Lady Jane's face when she heard the splendid
- stripling denied admittance.
- There was a pause now, a sort of waiting silence which Tom could
- not understand. He glanced at Lord Hertford, who gave him a sign-
- but he failed to understand that also. The ready Elizabeth came to the
- rescue with her usual easy grace. She made reverence and said:
- 'Have we leave of the prince's grace my brother to go?'
- Tom said:
- 'Indeed, your ladyships can have whatsoever of me they will, for
- the asking; yet would I rather give them any other thing that in my
- poor power lieth, than leave to take the light and blessing of their
- presence hence. Give ye good den, and God be with ye!' Then he
- smiled inwardly at the thought, ''tis not for naught I have dwelt
- but among princes in my reading, and taught my tongue some slight
- trick of their broidered and gracious speech withal!'
- When the illustrious maidens were gone, Tom turned wearily to
- his keepers and said:
- 'May it please your lordships to grant me leave to go into some
- corner and rest me!'
- Lord Hertford said:
- 'So please your highness, it is for you to command, it is for us
- to obey. That thou shouldst rest, is indeed a needful thing, since
- thou must journey to the city presently.'
- He touched a bell and a page appeared, who was ordered to desire
- the presence of Sir William Herbert. This gentleman came
- straightway, and conducted Tom to an inner apartment. Tom's first
- movement there was to reach for a cup of water; but a
- silk-and-velvet servitor seized it, dropped upon one knee, and offered
- it to him on a golden salver.
- Next, the tired captive sat down and was going to take off his
- buskins, timidly asking leave with his eye, but another
- silk-and-velvet discomforter went down upon his knees and took the
- office from him. He made two or three further efforts to help himself,
- but being promptly forestalled each time, he finally gave up, with a
- sigh of resignation and a murmured 'Beshrew me, but I marvel they do
- not require to breathe for me also!' Slippered, and wrapped in a
- sumptuous robe, he laid himself down at last to rest, but not to
- sleep, for his head was too full of thoughts and the room too full
- of people. He could not dismiss the former, so they stayed; he did not
- know enough to dismiss the latter, so they stayed also, to his vast
- regret- and theirs.
- Tom's departure had left his two noble guardians alone. They mused
- awhile, with much headshaking and walking the floor, then Lord St.
- John said:
- 'Plainly, what dost thou think?'
- 'Plainly, then, this. The king is near his end, my nephew is
- mad, mad will mount the throne, and mad remain. God protect England,
- since she will need it!'
- 'Verily it promiseth so, indeed. But... have you no misgivings
- as to... as to...'
- The speaker hesitated, and finally stopped. He evidently felt that
- he was upon delicate ground. Lord Hertford stopped before him,
- looked into his face with a clear, frank eye, and said:
- 'Speak on- there is none to hear but me. Misgivings as to what?'
- 'I am loath to word the thing that is in my mind, and thou so near
- to him in blood, my lord. But craving pardon if I do offend, seemeth
- it not strange that madness could so change his port and manner!-
- not but that his port and speech are princely still, but that they
- differ in one unweighty trifle or another, from what his custom was
- aforetime. Seemeth it not strange that madness should filch from his
- memory his father's very lineaments; the customs and observances
- that are his due from such as be about him; and, leaving him his
- Latin, strip him of his Greek and French? My lord, be not offended,
- but ease my mind of its disquiet and receive my grateful thanks. It
- haunteth me, his saying he was not the prince, and so-'
- 'Peace, my lord, thou utterest treason! Hast forgot the king's
- command? Remember I am party to thy crime, if I but listen.'
- St. John paled, and hastened to say:
- 'I was in fault, I do confess it. Betray me not, grant me this
- grace out of thy courtesy, and I will neither think nor speak of
- this thing more. Deal not hardly with me, sir, else am I ruined.'
- 'I am content, my lord. So thou offend not again, here or in the
- ears of others, it shall be as though thou hadst not spoken. But
- thou needst not have misgivings. He is my sister's son; are not his
- voice, his face, his form, familiar to me from his cradle? Madness can
- do all the odd conflicting things thou seest in him, and more. Dost
- not recall how that the old Baron Marley, being mad, forgot the
- favor of his own countenance that he had known for sixty years, and
- held it was another's; nay, even claimed he was the son of Mary
- Magdalene, and that his head was made of Spanish glass; and sooth to
- say, he suffered none to touch it, lest by mischance some heedless
- hand might shiver it. Give thy misgivings easement, good my lord. This
- is the very prince, I know him well- and soon will be thy king; it may
- advantage thee to bear this in mind and more dwell upon it than the
- other.'
- After some further talk, in which the Lord St. John covered up his
- mistake as well as he could by repeated protests that his faith was
- thoroughly grounded now, and could not be assailed by doubts again,
- the Lord Hertford relieved his fellow-keeper, and sat down to keep
- watch and ward alone. He was soon deep in meditation. And evidently
- the longer he thought, the more he was bothered. By and by he began to
- pace the floor and mutter.
- 'Tush, he must be the prince! Will any he in all the land maintain
- there can be two, not of one blood and birth, so marvelously
- twinned? And even were it so, 'twere yet a stranger miracle that
- chance should cast the one into the other's place. Nay, 'tis folly,
- folly, folly!'
- Presently he said:
- 'Now were he impostor and called himself prince, look you that
- would be natural; that would be reasonable. But lived ever an impostor
- yet, who, being called prince by the king, prince by the court, prince
- by all, denied his dignity and pleaded against his exaltation? No!
- By the soul of St. Swithin, no! This is the true prince, gone mad!'
- CHAPTER VII
- Tom's First Royal Dinner
-
- SOMEWHAT after one in the afternoon, Tom resignedly underwent
- the ordeal of being dressed for dinner. He found himself as finely
- clothed as before, but everything different, everything changed,
- from his ruff to his stockings. He was presently conducted with much
- state to a spacious and ornate apartment, where a table was already
- set for one. Its furniture was all of massy gold, and beautified
- with designs which well-nigh made it priceless, since they were the
- work of Benvenuto. The room was half filled with noble servitors. A
- chaplain said grace, and Tom was about to fall to, for hunger had long
- been constitutional with him, but was interrupted by my lord the
- Earl of Berkeley, who fastened a napkin about his neck; for the
- great post of Diaperers to the Prince of Wales was hereditary in
- this nobleman's family. Tom's cupbearer was present, and forestalled
- all his attempts to help himself to wine. The Taster to his Highness
- the Prince of Wales was there also, prepared to taste any suspicious
- dish upon requirement, and run the risk of being poisoned. He was only
- an ornamental appendage at this time, and was seldom called to
- exercise his function; but there had been times, not many
- generations past, when the office of taster had its perils, and was
- not a grandeur to be desired. Why they did not use a dog or a
- plumber seems strange; but all the ways of royalty are strange. My
- Lord d'Arcy, First Groom of the Chamber, was there, to do goodness
- knows what; but there he was- let that suffice. The Lord Chief
- Butler was there, and stood behind Tom's chair overseeing the
- solemnities, under command of the Lord Great Steward and the Lord Head
- Cook, who stood near. Tom had three hundred and eighty-four servants
- besides these; but they were not all in that room, of course, nor
- the quarter of them; neither was Tom aware yet that they existed.
- All those that were present had been well drilled within the
- hour to remember that the prince was temporarily out of his head,
- and to be careful to show no surprise at his vagaries. These
- 'vagaries' were soon on exhibition before them; but they only moved
- their compassion and their sorrow, not their mirth. It was a heavy
- affliction to them to see the beloved prince so stricken.
- Poor Tom ate with his fingers mainly; but no one smiled at it,
- or even seemed to observe it. He inspected his napkin curiously and
- with deep interest, for it was of a very dainty and beautiful
- fabric, then said with simplicity:
- 'Prithee, take it away, lest in mine unheedfulness it be soiled.'
- The Hereditary Diaperer took it away with reverent manner, and
- without word or protest of any sort.
- Tom examined the turnips and the lettuce with interest, and
- asked what they were, and if they were to be eaten; for it was only
- recently that men had begun to raise these things in England in
- place of importing them as luxuries from Holland.*(4) His question was
- answered with grave respect, and no surprise manifested. When he had
- finished his dessert, he filled his pockets with nuts; but nobody
- appeared to be aware of it, or disturbed by it. But the next moment he
- was himself disturbed by it, and showed discomposure; for this was the
- only service he had been permitted to do with his own hands during the
- meal, and he did not doubt that he had done a most improper and
- unprincely thing. At that moment the muscles of his nose began to
- twitch, and the end of that organ to lift and wrinkle. This continued,
- and Tom began to evince a growing distress. He looked appealingly,
- first at one and then another of the lords about him, and tears came
- into his eyes. They sprang forward with dismay in their faces, and
- begged to know his trouble. Tom said with genuine anguish:
- 'I crave your indulgence; my nose itcheth cruelly. What is the
- custom and usage in this emergence? Prithee speed, for 'tis but a
- little time that I can bear it.'
- None smiled; but all were sore perplexed, and looked one to the
- other in deep tribulation for counsel. But, behold, here was a dead
- wall, and nothing in English history to tell how to get over it. The
- Master of Ceremonies was not present; there was no one who felt safe
- to venture upon this uncharted sea, or risk the attempt to solve
- this solemn problem. Alas! there was no Hereditary Scratcher. Meantime
- the tears had overflowed their banks, and begun to trickle down
- Tom's cheeks. His twitching nose was pleading more urgently than
- ever for relief. At last nature broke down the barriers of
- etiquette; Tom lifted up an inward prayer for pardon if he was doing
- wrong, and brought relief to the burdened hearts of his court by
- scratching his nose himself.
- His meal being ended, a lord came and held before him a broad,
- shallow, golden dish with fragrant rose-water in it, to cleanse his
- mouth and fingers with; and my lord the Hereditary Diaperer stood by
- with a napkin for his use. Tom gazed at the dish a puzzled moment or
- two, then raised it to his lips, and gravely took a draught. Then he
- returned it to the waiting lord, and said:
- 'Nay, it likes me not, my lord; it hath a pretty flavor, but it
- wanteth strength.'
- This new eccentricity of the prince's ruined mind made all the
- hearts about him ache; but the sad sight moved none to merriment.
- Tom's next unconscious blunder was to get up and leave the table
- just when the chaplain had taken his stand behind his chair and with
- uplifted hands and closed uplifted eyes, was in the act of beginning
- the blessing. Still nobody seemed to perceive that the prince had done
- a thing unusual.
- By his own request, our small friend was now conducted to his
- private cabinet, and left there alone to his own devices. Hanging upon
- hooks in the oaken wainscoting were the several pieces of a suit of
- shining steel armor, covered all over with beautiful designs
- exquisitely inlaid in gold. This martial panoply belonged to the
- true prince- a recent present from Madam Parr, the queen. Tom put on
- the greaves, the gauntlets, the plumed helmet, and such other pieces
- as he could don without assistance, and for a while was minded to call
- for help and complete the matter, but bethought him of the nuts he had
- brought away from dinner, and the joy it would be to eat them with
- no crowd to eye him, and no Grand Hereditaries to pester him with
- undesired services; so he restored the pretty things to their
- several places, and soon was cracking nuts, and feeling almost
- naturally happy for the first time since God for his sins had made him
- a prince. When the nuts were all gone, he stumbled upon some
- inviting books in a closet, among them one about the etiquette of
- the English court. This was a prize. He lay down upon a sumptuous
- divan, and proceeded to instruct himself with honest zeal. Let us
- leave him there for the present.
- CHAPTER VIII
- The Question of the Seal
-
- ABOUT five o'clock Henry VIII awoke out of an unrefreshing nap,
- and muttered to himself, 'Troublous dreams, troublous dreams! Mine end
- is now at hand; so say these warnings, and my failing pulses do
- confirm it.' Presently a wicked light flamed up in his eye, and he
- muttered, 'Yet will not I die till he go before.'
- His attendants perceiving that he was awake, one of them asked his
- pleasure concerning the Lord Chancellor, who was waiting without.
- 'Admit him, admit him!' exclaimed the king eagerly.
- The Lord Chancellor entered, and knelt by the king's couch,
- saying:
- 'I have given order, and, according to the king's command, the
- peers of the realm, in their robes, do now stand at the bar of the
- House, where, having confirmed the Duke of Norfolk's doom, they humbly
- wait his majesty's further pleasure in the matter.'
- The king's face lit up with a fierce joy. Said he:
- 'Lift me up! In mine own person will I go before my Parliament,
- and with mine own hand will I seal the warrant that rids me of-'
- His voice failed; an ashen pallor swept the flush from his cheeks;
- and the attendants eased him back upon his pillows, and hurriedly
- assisted him with restoratives. Presently he said sorrowfully:
- 'Alack, how have I longed for this sweet hour! and lo, too late it
- cometh, and I am robbed of this so coveted chance. But speed ye, speed
- ye! let others do this happy office sith 'tis denied to me. I put my
- great seal in commission: choose thou the lords that shall compose it,
- and get ye to your work. Speed ye, man! Before the sun shall rise
- and set again, bring me his head that I may see it.'
- 'According to the king's command, so shall it be. Will't please
- your majesty to order that the Seal be now restored to me, so that I
- may forth upon the business?'
- 'The Seal! Who keepeth the Seal but thou?'
- 'Please your majesty, you did take it from me two days since,
- saying it should no more do its office till your own royal hand should
- use it upon the Duke of Norfolk's warrant.'
- 'Why, so in sooth I did; I do remember it.... What did I with
- it!... I am very feeble.... So oft these days doth my memory play
- the traitor with me.... 'Tis strange, strange-'
- The king dropped into inarticulate mumblings, shaking his gray
- head weakly from time to time, and gropingly trying to recollect
- what he had done with the Seal. At last my Lord Hertford ventured to
- kneel and offer information-
- 'Sire, if that I may be so bold, here be several that do
- remember with me how that you gave the Great Seal into the hands of
- his Highness the Prince of Wales to keep against the day that-'
- 'True, most true!' interrupted the king. 'Fetch it! Go: time
- flieth!'
- Lord Hertford flew to Tom, but returned to the king before very
- long, troubled and empty-handed. He delivered himself to this effect:
- 'It grieveth me, my lord the king, to bear so heavy and
- unwelcome tidings; but it is the will of God that the prince's
- affliction abideth still, and he cannot recall to mind that he
- received the Seal. So came I quickly to report, thinking it were waste
- of precious time, and little worth withal, that any should attempt
- to search the long array of chambers and saloons that belong unto
- his royal high-'
- A groan from the king interrupted my lord at this point. After a
- while his majesty said, with a deep sadness in his tone:
- 'Trouble him no more, poor child. The hand of God lieth heavy upon
- him, and my heart goeth out in loving compassion for him, and sorrow
- that I may not bear his burden on mine own old trouble-weighted
- shoulders, and so bring him peace.'
- He closed his eyes, fell to mumbling, and presently was silent.
- After a time he opened his eyes again, and gazed vacantly around until
- his glance rested upon the kneeling Lord Chancellor. Instantly his
- face flushed with wrath:
- 'What, thou here yet! By the glory of God, an thou gettest not
- about that traitor's business, thy miter shall have holiday the morrow
- for lack of a head to grace withal!'
- The trembling Chancellor answered:
- 'Good your majesty, I cry you mercy! I but waited for the Seal.'
- 'Man, hast lost thy wits? The small Seal which aforetime I was
- wont to take with me abroad lieth in my treasury. And, since the Great
- Seal hath flown away, shall not it suffice? Hast lost thy wits?
- Begone! And hark ye- come no more till thou do bring his head.'
- The poor Chancellor was not long in removing himself from this
- dangerous vicinity; nor did the commission waste time in giving the
- royal assent to the work of the slavish Parliament, and appointing the
- morrow for the beheading of the premier peer of England, the
- luckless Duke of Norfolk.*(5)
- CHAPTER IX
- The River Pageant
-
- AT nine in the evening the whole vast river-front of the palace
- was blazing with light. The river itself, as far as the eye could
- reach cityward, was so thickly covered with watermen's boats and
- with pleasure barges, all fringed with colored lanterns, and gently
- agitated by the waves, that it resembled a glowing and limitless
- garden of flowers stirred to soft motion by summer winds. The grand
- terrace of stone steps leading down to the water, spacious enough to
- mass the army of a German principality upon, was a picture to see,
- with its ranks of royal halberdiers in polished armor, and its
- troops of brilliantly costumed servitors flitting up and down, and
- to and fro, in the hurry of preparation.
- Presently a command was given, and immediately all living
- creatures vanished from the steps. Now the air was heavy with the hush
- of suspense and expectancy. As far as one's vision could carry, he
- might see the myriads of people in the boats rise up, and shade
- their eyes from the glare of lanterns and torches, and gaze toward the
- palace.
- A file of forty or fifty state barges drew up to the steps. They
- were richly gilt, and their lofty prows and sterns were elaborately
- carved. Some of them were decorated with banners and streamers; some
- with cloth-of-gold and arras embroidered with coats of arms; others
- with silken flags that had numberless little silver bells fastened
- to them, which shook out tiny showers of joyous music whenever the
- breezes fluttered them; others of yet higher pretensions, since they
- belonged to nobles in the prince's immediate service, had their
- sides picturesquely fenced with shields gorgeously emblazoned with
- armorial bearings. Each state barge was towed by a tender. Besides the
- rowers, these tenders carried each a number of men-at-arms in glossy
- helmet and breastplate, and a company of musicians.
- The advance-guard of the expected procession now appeared in the
- great gateway, a troop of halberdiers. 'They were dressed in striped
- hose of black and tawny, velvet caps graced at the sides with silver
- roses, and doublets of murrey and blue cloth, embroidered on the front
- and back with the three feathers, the prince's blazon, woven in
- gold. Their halberd staves were covered with crimson velvet,
- fastened with gilt nails, and ornamented with gold tassels. Filing off
- on the right and left, they formed two long lines, extending from
- the gateway of the palace to the water's edge. A thick, rayed cloth or
- carpet was then unfolded, and laid down between them by attendants
- in the gold-and-crimson liveries of the prince. This done, a
- flourish of trumpets resounded from within. A lively prelude arose
- from the musicians on the water; and two ushers with white wands
- marched with a slow and stately pace from the portal. They were
- followed by an officer bearing the civic mace, after whom came another
- carrying the city's sword; then several sergeants of the city guard,
- in their full accoutrements, and with badges on their sleeves; then
- the Garter king-at-arms, in his tabard; then several knights of the
- Bath, each with a white lace on his sleeve; then their esquires;
- then the judges, in their robes of scarlet and coifs; then the Lord
- High Chancellor of England, in a robe of scarlet, open before, and
- purfled with minever; then a deputation of aldermen, in their
- scarlet cloaks; and then the heads of the different civic companies,
- in their robes of state. Now came twelve French gentlemen, in splendid
- habiliments, consisting of pourpoints of white damask barred with
- gold, short mantles of crimson velvet lined with violet taffeta, and
- carnation-colored hauts-de-chausses, and took their way down the
- steps. They were of the suite of the French ambassador, and were
- followed by twelve cavaliers of the suite of the Spanish ambassador,
- clothed in black velvet, unrelieved by any ornament. Following these
- came several great English nobles with their attendants.'
- There was a flourish of trumpets within; and the prince's uncle,
- the future great Duke of Somerset, emerged from the gateway, arrayed
- in a 'doublet of black cloth-of-gold, and a cloak of crimson satin
- flowered with gold, and ribanded with nets of silver.' He turned,
- doffed his plumed cap, bent his body in a low reverence, and began
- to step backward, bowing at each step. A prolonged trumpet-blast
- followed, and a proclamation, 'Way for the high and mighty, the Lord
- Edward, Prince of Wales!' High aloft on the palace walls a long line
- of red tongues of flame leaped forth with a thunder-crash; the
- massed world on the river burst into a mighty roar of welcome; and Tom
- Canty, the cause and hero of it all, stepped into view, and slightly
- bowed his princely head.
- He was 'magnificently habited in a doublet of white satin, with
- a front-piece of purple cloth-of-tissue, powdered with diamonds, and
- edged with ermine. Over this he wore a mantle of white
- cloth-of-gold, pounced with the triple-feather crest, lined with
- blue satin, set with pearls and precious stones, and fastened with a
- clasp of brilliants. About his neck hung the order of the Garter,
- and several princely foreign orders'; and wherever light fell upon him
- jewels responded with a blinding flash. O, Tom Canty, born in a hovel,
- bred in the gutters of London, familiar with rags and dirt and misery,
- what a spectacle is this!
- CHAPTER X
- The Prince in the Toils
-
- WE left John Canty dragging the rightful prince into Offal
- Court, with a noisy and delighted mob at his heels. There was but
- one person in it who offered a pleading word for the captive, and he
- was not heeded; he was hardly even heard, so great was the turmoil.
- The prince continued to struggle for freedom, and to rage against
- the treatment he was suffering, until John Canty lost what little
- patience was left in him, and raised his oaken cudgel in a sudden fury
- over the prince's head. The single pleader for the lad sprang to
- stop the man's arm, and the blow descended upon his own wrist. Canty
- roared out:
- 'Thou'lt meddle, wilt thou? Then have thy reward.'
- His cudgel crashed down upon the meddler's head; there was a
- groan, a dim form sank to the ground among the feet of the crowd,
- and the next moment it lay there in the dark alone. The mob pressed
- on, their enjoyment nothing disturbed by this episode.
- Presently the prince found himself in John Canty's abode, with the
- door closed against the outsiders. By the vague light of a tallow
- candle which was thrust into a bottle, he made out the main features
- of the loathsome den, and also of the occupants of it. Two frowsy
- girls and a middle-aged woman cowered against the wall in one
- corner, with the aspect of animals habituated to harsh usage, and
- expecting and dreading it now. From another corner stole a withered
- hag with streaming gray hair and malignant eyes. John Canty said to
- this one:
- 'Tarry! There's fine mummeries here. Mar them not till thou'st
- enjoyed them; then let thy hand be heavy as thou wilt. Stand forth,
- lad. Now say thy foolery again, an thou'st not forget it. Name thy
- name. Who art thou?'
- The insulted blood mounted to the little prince's cheek once more,
- and he lifted a steady and indignant gaze to the man's face, and said:
- ''Tis but ill-breeding in such as thou to command me to speak. I
- tell thee now, as I told thee before, I am Edward, Prince of Wales,
- and none other.'
- The stunning surprise of this reply nailed the hag's feet to the
- floor where she stood, and almost took her breath. She stared at the
- prince in stupid amazement, which so amused her ruffianly son that
- he burst into a roar of laughter. But the effect upon Tom Canty's
- mother and sisters was different. Their dread of bodily injury gave
- way at once to distress of a different sort. They ran forward with woe
- and dismay in their faces, exclaiming:
- 'Oh, poor Tom, poor lad!'
- The mother fell on her knees before the prince, put her hands upon
- his shoulders, and gazed yearningly into his face through her rising
- tears. Then she said:
- 'Oh, my poor boy! thy foolish reading hath wrought its woeful work
- at last, and ta'en thy wit away. Ah! why didst thou cleave to it
- when I so warned thee 'gainst it? Thou'st broke thy mother's heart.'
- The prince looked into her face, and said gently:
- 'Thy son is well and hath not lost his wits, good dame. Comfort
- thee; let me to the palace where he is, and straightway will the
- king my father restore him to thee.'
- 'The king thy father! Oh, my child! unsay these words that be
- freighted with death for thee, and ruin for all that be near to
- thee. Shake off this gruesome dream. Call back thy poor wandering
- memory. Look upon me. Am not I thy mother that bore thee, and loveth
- thee?'
- The prince shook his head, and reluctantly said:
- 'God knoweth I am loath to grieve thy heart; but truly have I
- never looked upon thy face before.'
- The woman sank back to a sitting posture on the floor, and,
- covering her eyes with her hands, gave way to heartbroken sobs and
- wailings.
- 'Let the show go on!' shouted Canty. 'What, Nan! what, Bet!
- Mannerless wenches! will ye stand in the prince's presence? Upon
- your knees, ye pauper scum, and do him reverence!'
- He followed this with another horse-laugh. The girls began to
- plead timidly for their brother; and Nan said:
- 'An thou wilt but let him to bed, father, rest and sleep will heal
- his madness; prithee, do.'
- 'Do, father,' said Bet; 'he is more worn than is his wont.
- To-morrow will he be himself again, and will beg with diligence, and
- come not empty home again.'
- This remark sobered the father's joviality, and brought his mind
- to business. He turned angrily upon the prince, and said:
- 'The morrow must we pay two pennies to him that owns this hole;
- two pennies mark ye- all this money for a half-year's rent, else out
- of this we go. Show what thou'st gathered with thy lazy begging.'
- The prince said:
- 'Offend me not with thy sordid matters. I tell thee again I am the
- king's son.'
- A sounding blow upon the prince's shoulder from Canty's broad palm
- sent him staggering into good-wife Canty's arms, who clasped him to
- her breast, and sheltered him from a pelting rain of cuffs and slaps
- by interposing her own person.
- The frightened girls retreated to their corner; but the
- grandmother stepped eagerly forward to assist her son. The prince
- sprang away from Mrs. Canty, exclaiming:
- 'Thou shalt not suffer for me, madam. Let these swine do their
- will upon me alone.'
- This speech infuriated the swine to such a degree that they set
- about their work without waste of time. Between them they belabored
- the boy right soundly, and then gave the girls and their mother a
- beating for showing sympathy for the victim.
- 'Now,' said Canty, 'to bed, all of ye. The entertainment has tired
- me.'
- The light was put out, and the family retired. As soon as the
- snorings of the head of the house and his mother showed that they were
- asleep, the young girls crept to where the prince lay, and covered him
- tenderly from the cold with straw and rags; and their mother crept
- to him also, and stroked his hair, and cried over him, whispering
- broken words of comfort and compassion in his ear the while. She had
- saved a morsel for him to eat also; but the boy's pains had swept away
- all appetite- at least for black and tasteless crusts. He was
- touched by her brave and costly defense of him, and by her
- commiseration; and he thanked her in very noble and princely words,
- and begged her to go to sleep and try to forget her sorrows. And he
- added that the king his father would not let her loyal kindness and
- devotion go unrewarded. This return to his 'madness' broke her heart
- anew, and she strained him to her breast again and again and then went
- back, drowned in tears, to her bed.
- As she lay thinking and mourning, the suggestion began to creep
- into her mind that there was an undefinable something about this boy
- that was lacking in Tom Canty, mad or sane. She could not describe it,
- she could not tell just what it was, and yet her sharp mother-instinct
- seemed to detect it and perceive it. What if the boy were really not
- her son, after all? Oh, absurd! She almost smiled at the idea, spite
- of her griefs and troubles. No matter, she found that it was an idea
- that would not 'down', but persisted in haunting her. It pursued
- her, it harassed her, it clung to her, and refused to be put away or
- ignored. At last she perceived that there was not going to be any
- peace for her until she should devise a test that should prove, dearly
- and without question, whether this lad was her son or not, and so
- banish these wearing and worrying doubts. Ah, yes, this was plainly
- the right way out of the difficulty; therefore, she set her wits to
- work at once to contrive that test. But it was an easier thing to
- propose than to accomplish. She turned over in her mind one
- promising test after another, but was obliged to relinquish them
- all- none of them were absolutely sure, absolutely perfect; and an
- imperfect one could not satisfy her. Evidently she was racking her
- head in vain- it seemed manifest that she must give the matter up.
- While this depressing thought was passing through her mind, her ear
- caught the regular breathing of the boy, and she knew he had fallen
- asleep. And while she listened, the measured breathing was broken by a
- soft, startled cry, such as one utters in a troubled dream. This
- chance occurrence furnished her instantly with a plan worth all her
- labored tests combined. She at once set herself feverishly, but
- noiselessly, to work to relight her candle, muttering to herself, 'Had
- I but seen him then, I should have known! Since that day, when he
- was little, that the powder burst in his face, he hath never been
- startled of a sudden out of his dreams or out of his thinkings, but he
- hath cast his hand before his eyes, even as he did that day, and not
- as others would do it, with the palm inward, but always with the
- palm turned outward- I have seen it a hundred times, and it hath never
- varied nor ever failed. Yes, I shall soon know now!'
- By this time she had crept to the slumbering boy's side, with
- the candle shaded in her hand. She bent heedfully and warily over him,
- scarcely breathing, in her suppressed excitement, and suddenly flashed
- the light in his face and struck the floor by his ear with her
- knuckles. The sleeper's eyes sprung wide open, and he cast a
- startled stare about him- but he made no special movement with his
- hands.
- The poor woman was smitten almost helpless with surprise and
- grief; but she contrived to hide her emotions, and to soothe the boy
- to sleep again; then she crept apart and communed miserably with
- herself upon the disastrous result of her experiment. She tried to
- believe that her Tom's madness had banished this habitual gesture of
- his; but she could not do it. 'No,' she said, 'his hands are not
- mad, they could not unlearn so old a habit in so brief a time. Oh,
- this is a heavy day for me!'
- Still, hope was as stubborn now as doubt had been before; she
- could not bring herself to accept the verdict of the test; she must
- try the thing again- the failure must have been only an accident; so
- she startled the boy out of his sleep a second and a third time, at
- intervals- with the same result which had marked the first test-
- then she dragged herself to bed, and fell sorrowfully asleep,
- saying, 'But I cannot give him up- oh, no, I cannot- he must be my
- boy!'
- The poor mother's interruptions having ceased, and the prince's
- pains having gradually lost their power to disturb him, utter
- weariness at last sealed his eyes in a profound and restful sleep.
- Hour after hour slipped away, and still he slept like the dead. Thus
- four or five hours passed. Then his stupor began to lighten.
- Presently, while half asleep and half awake, he murmured:
- 'Sir William!'
- After a moment:
- 'Ho, Sir William Herbert! Hie thee hither, and list to the
- strangest dream that ever.... Sir William! Dost hear? Man, I did think
- me changed to a pauper, and... Ho there! Guards! Sir William! What! is
- there no groom of the chamber in waiting? Alack it shall go hard
- with-'
- 'What aileth thee?' asked a whisper near him. 'Who art thou
- calling?'
- 'Sir William Herbert. Who art thou?'
- 'I? Who should I be, but thy sister Nan? Oh, Tom, I had forgot!
- Tbou'rt mad yet- poor lad thou'rt mad yet, would I had never woke to
- know it again! But, prithee, master thy tongue, lest we be all
- beaten till we die!'
- The startled prince sprang partly up, but a sharp reminder from
- his stiffened bruises brought him to himself, and he sunk back among
- his foul straw with a moan and the ejaculation:
- 'Alas, it was no dream, then!'
- In a moment all the heavy sorrow and misery which sleep had
- banished were upon him again, and he realized that he was no longer
- a petted prince in a palace, with the adoring eyes of a nation upon
- him, but a pauper, an outcast, clothed in rags, prisoner in a den
- fit only for beasts, and consorting with beggars and thieves.
- In the midst of his grief he began to be conscious of hilarious
- noises and shoutings, apparently but a block or two away. The next
- moment there were several sharp raps at the door; John Canty ceased
- from snoring and said:
- 'Who knocketh? What wilt thou?'
- A voice answered:
- 'Know'st thou who it was thou laid thy cudgel on?'
- 'No. Neither know I, nor care.'
- 'Belike thou'lt change thy note eftsoons. An thou would save thy
- neck, nothing but flight may stead thee. The man is this moment
- delivering up the ghost. 'Tis the priest, Father Andrew!'
- 'God-a-mercy!' exclaimed Canty. He roused his family, and hoarsely
- commanded, 'Up with ye all and fly- or bide where ye are and perish!'
- Scarcely five minutes later the Canty household were in the street
- and flying for their lives. John Canty held the prince by the wrist,
- and hurried him along the dark way, giving him this caution in a low
- voice:
- 'Mind thy tongue, thou mad fool, and speak not our name. I will
- choose me a new name, speedily, to throw the law's dogs off the scent.
- Mind thy tongue, I tell thee!'
- He growled these words to the rest of the family:
- 'If it so chance that we be separated, let each make for London
- Bridge; whoso findeth himself as far as the last linen-draper's shop
- on the bridge, let him tarry there till the others be come, then
- will we flee into Southwark together.'
- At this moment the party burst suddenly out of darkness into
- light; and not only into light, but into the midst of a multitude of
- singing, dancing, and shouting people, massed together on the
- river-frontage. There was a line of bonfires stretching as far as
- one could see, up and down the Thames; London Bridge was
- illuminated; Southwark Bridge likewise; the entire river was aglow
- with the flash and sheen of colored lights, and constant explosions of
- fireworks filled the skies with an intricate commingling of shooting
- splendors and a thick rain of dazzling sparks that almost turned night
- into day; everywhere were crowds of revelers; all London seemed to
- be at large.
- John Canty delivered himself of a furious curse and commanded a
- retreat; but it was too late. He and his tribe were swallowed up in
- that swarming hive of humanity, and hopelessly separated from each
- other in an instant. We are not considering that the prince was one of
- his tribe; Canty still kept his grip upon him. The prince's heart
- was beating high with hopes of escape now. A burly waterman,
- considerably exalted with liquor, found himself rudely shoved by Canty
- in his efforts to plow through the crowd; he laid his great hand on
- Canty's shoulder and said:
- 'Nay, whither so fast, friend? Dost canker thy soul with sordid
- business when all that be leal men and true make holiday?'
- 'Mine affairs are mine own, they concern thee not,' answered
- Canty, roughly; 'take away thy hand and let me pass.'
- 'Sith that is thy humor, thou'lt not pass till thou'st drunk to
- the Prince of Wales, I tell thee that,' said the waterman, barring the
- way resolutely.
- 'Give me the cup, then, and make speed, make speed.'
- Other revelers were interested by this time. They cried out:
- 'The loving-cup, the loving-cup! make the sour knave drink the
- loving-cup, else will we feed him to the fishes.'
- So a huge loving-cup was brought; the waterman, grasping it by one
- of its handles, and with his other hand bearing up the end of an
- imaginary napkin, presented it in due and ancient form to Canty, who
- had to grasp the opposite handle with one of his hands and take off
- the lid with the other, according to ancient custom.*(6) This left the
- prince hand-free for a second, of course. He wasted no time, but dived
- among the forest of legs about him and disappeared. In another
- moment he could not have been harder to find, under that tossing sea
- of life, if its billows had been the Atlantic's and he a lost
- sixpence.
- He very soon realized this fact, and straightway busied himself
- about his own affairs without further thought of John Canty. He
- quickly realized another thing, too. To wit, that a spurious Prince of
- Wales was being feasted by the city in his stead. He easily
- concluded that the pauper lad, Tom Canty, had deliberately taken
- advantage of his stupendous opportunity and become a usurper.
- Therefore there was but one course to pursue- find his way to
- the Guildhall, make himself known, and denounce the impostor. He
- also made up his mind that Tom should be allowed a reasonable time for
- spiritual preparation, and then be hanged, drawn, and quartered,
- according to the law and usage of the day, in cases of high treason.
- CHAPTER XI
- At Guildhall
-
- THE royal barge, attended by its gorgeous fleet, took its
- stately way down the Thames through the wilderness of illuminated
- boats. The air was laden with music; the river-banks were beruffled
- with joy- flames; the distant city lay in a soft luminous glow from
- its countless invisible bonfires; above it rose many a slender spire
- into the sky, incrusted with sparkling lights, wherefore in their
- remoteness they seemed like jeweled lances thrust aloft; as the
- fleet swept along, it was greeted from the banks with a continuous
- hoarse roar of cheers and the ceaseless flash and boom of artillery.
- To Tom Canty, half buried in his silken cushions, these sounds and
- this spectacle were a wonder unspeakably sublime and astonishing. To
- his little friends at his side, the Princess Elizabeth and the Lady
- Jane Grey, they were nothing.
- Arrived at the Dowgate, the fleet was towed up the limpid Walbrook
- (whose channel has now been for two centuries buried out of sight
- under acres of buildings) to Bucklersbury, past houses and under
- bridges populous with merry-makers and brilliantly lighted, and at
- last came to a halt in a basin where now is Barge Yard, in the
- center of the ancient city of London. Tom disembarked, and he and
- his gallant procession crossed Cheapside and made a short march
- through the Old Jewry and Basinghall Street to the Guildhall.
- Tom and his little ladies were received with due ceremony by the
- Lord Mayor and the Fathers of the City, in their gold chains and
- scarlet robes of state, and conducted to a rich canopy of state at the
- head of the great hall, preceded by heralds making proclamation, and
- by the Mace and the City Sword. The lords and ladies who were to
- attend upon Tom and his two small friends took their places behind
- their chairs.
- At a lower table the court grandees and other guests of noble
- degree were seated, with the magnates of the city; the commoners
- took places at a multitude of tables on the main floor of the hall.
- From their lofty vantage-ground, the giants Gog and Magog, the ancient
- guardians of the city, contemplated the spectacle below them with eyes
- grown familar to it in forgotten generations. There was a
- bugle-blast and a proclamation, and a fat butler appeared in a high
- perch in the leftward wall, followed by his servitors bearing with
- impressive solemnity a royal Baron of Beef, smoking hot and ready
- for the knife.
- After grace, Tom (being instructed) rose- and the whole house with
- him- and drank from a portly golden loving-cup with the Princess
- Elizabeth; from her it passed to the Lady Jane, and then traversed the
- general assemblage. So the banquet began.
- By midnight the revelry was at its height. Now came one of those
- picturesque spectacles so admired in that old day. A description of it
- is still extant in the quaint wording of a chronicler who witnessed
- it:
- 'Space being made, presently entered a baron and an earl appareled
- after the Turkish fashion in long robes of bawdkin powdered with gold;
- hats on their heads of crimson velvet, with great rolls of gold,
- girded with two swords, called simitars, hanging by great bawdricks of
- gold. Next came yet another baron and another earl, in two long
- gowns of yellow satin, traversed with white satin, and in every bend
- of white was a bend of crimson satin, after the fashion of Russia,
- with furred hats of gray on their heads; either of them having an
- hatchet in their hands, and boots with pykes' (points a foot long),
- 'turned up. And after them came a knight, then the Lord High
- Admiral, and with him five nobles, in doublets of crimson velvet,
- voyded low on the back and before to the cannel-bone, laced on the
- breasts with chains of silver; and, over that, short cloaks of crimson
- satin, and on their heads hats after the dancers' fashion, with
- pheasants' feather in them. These were appareled after the fashion
- of Prussia. The torch-bearers, which were about an hundred, were
- appareled in crimson satin and green, like Moors, their faces black.
- Next came in a mommarye. Then the minstrels, which were disguised,
- danced; and the lords and ladies did wildly dance also, that it was
- a pleasure to behold.'
- And while Tom, in his high seat, was gazing upon this 'wild'
- dancing, lost in admiration of the dazzling commingling of
- kaleidoscopic colors which the whirling turmoil of gaudy figures below
- him presented, the ragged but real Little Prince of Wales was
- proclaiming his rights and his wrongs, denouncing the impostor, and
- clamoring for admission at the gates of Guildhall! The crowd enjoyed
- this episode prodigiously, and pressed forward and craned their
- necks to see the small rioter. Presently they began to taunt him and
- mock at him, purposely to goad him into a higher and still more
- entertaining fury. Tears of mortification sprung to his eyes, but he
- stood his ground and defied the mob right royally. Other taunts
- followed, added mockings stung him, and he exclaimed:
- 'I tell ye again, you pack of unmannerly curs, I am the Prince
- of Wales! And all forlorn and friendless as I be, with none to give me
- word of grace or help me in my need, yet will not I be driven from
- my ground, but will maintain it!'
- 'Though thou be prince or no prince 'tis all one, thou be'st a
- gallant lad, and not friendless neither! Here stand I by thy side to
- prove it; and mind I tell thee thou might'st have a worser friend than
- Miles Hendon and yet not tire thy legs with seeking. Rest thy small
- jaw, my child, I talk the language of these base kennel-rats like to a
- very native.'
- The speaker was a sort of Don Caesar de Bazan in dress, aspect,
- and bearing. He was tall, trim-built, muscular. His doublet and trunks
- were of rich material, but faded and threadbare, and their gold-lace
- adornments were sadly tarnished; his ruff was rumpled and damaged; the
- plume in his slouched hat was broken and had a bedraggled and
- disreputable look; at his side he wore a long rapier in a rusty iron
- sheath; his swaggering carriage marked him at once as a ruffler of the
- camp. The speech of this fantastic figure was received with an
- explosion of jeers and laughter. Some cried, ''Tis another prince in
- disguise!' ''Ware thy tongue, friend, belike he is dangerous!' 'Marry,
- he looketh it- mark his eye!' 'Pluck the lad from him- to the
- horse-pond wi' the cub!'
- Instantly a hand was laid upon the prince, under the impulse of
- this happy thought; as instantly the stranger's long sword was out and
- the meddler went to the earth under a sounding thump with the flat
- of it. The next moment a score of voices shouted 'Kill the dog! kill
- him! kill him!' and the mob closed in on the warrior, who backed
- himself against a wall and began to lay about him with his long weapon
- like a madman. His victims sprawled this way and that, but the
- mob-tide poured over their prostrate forms and dashed itself against
- the champion with undiminished fury. His moments seemed numbered,
- his destruction certain, when suddenly a trumpet-blast sounded, a
- voice shouted, 'Way for the king's messenger!' and a troop of horsemen
- came charging down upon the mob, who fled out of harm's reach as
- fast as their legs could carry them. The bold stranger caught up the
- prince in his arms, and was soon far away from danger and the
- multitude.
- Return we within the Guildhall. Suddenly, high above the
- jubilant roar and thunder of the revel, broke the clear peal of a
- bugle-note. There was instant silence- a deep hush; then a single
- voice rose- that of the messenger from the palace- and began to pipe
- forth a proclamation, the whole multitude standing, listening. The
- closing words, solemnly pronounced were:
- 'The king is dead!'
- The great assemblage bent their heads upon their breasts with
- one accord; remained so, in profound silence, a few moments, then
- all sunk upon their knees in a body, stretched out their hands towards
- Tom, and a mighty shout burst forth that seemed to shake the building:
- 'Long live the king!'
- Poor Tom's dazed eyes wandered abroad over this stupefying
- spectacle, and finally rested dreamily upon the kneeling princesses
- beside him a moment, then upon the Earl of Hertford. A sudden
- purpose dawned in his face. He said, in a low tone, at Lord Hertford's
- ear:
- 'Answer me truly, on thy faith and honor! Uttered I here a
- command, the which none but a king might hold privilege and
- prerogative to utter, would such commandment be obeyed, and none
- rise up to say me nay?'
- 'None, my liege, in all these realms. In thy person bides the
- majesty of England. Thou art the king- thy word is law.'
- Tom responded, in a strong, earnest voice, and with great
- animation:
- 'Then shall the king's law be law of mercy, from this day, and
- never more be law of blood! Up from thy knees and away! To the Tower
- and say the king decrees the Duke of Norfolk shall not die!'*(7)
- The words were caught up and carried eagerly from lip to lip far
- and wide over the hall, and as Hertford hurried from the presence,
- another prodigious shout burst forth:
- 'The reign of blood is ended! Long live Edward king of England!'
- CHAPTER XII
- The Prince and his Deliverer
-
- AS soon as Miles Hendon and the little prince were clear of the
- mob, they struck down through back lanes and alleys toward the
- river. Their way was unobstructed until they approached London Bridge;
- then they plowed into the multitude again, Hendon keeping a fast
- grip upon the prince's- no, the king's- wrist. The tremendous news was
- already abroad, and the boy learned it from a thousand voices at once-
- 'The king is dead!' The tidings struck a chill to the heart of the
- poor little waif, and sent a shudder through his frame. He realized
- the greatness of his loss, and was filled with a bitter grief; for the
- grim tyrant who had been such a terror to others had always been
- gentle with him. The tears sprung to his eyes and blurred all objects.
- For an instant he felt himself the most forlorn, outcast, and forsaken
- of God's creatures- then another cry shook the night with its
- far-reaching thunders: 'Long live King Edward the Sixth!' and this
- made his eyes kindle, and thrilled him with pride to his fingers'
- ends. 'Ah,' he thought, 'how grand and strange it seems- I AM KING!'
- Our friends threaded their way slowly through the throngs upon the
- Bridge. This structure, which had stood for six hundred years, and had
- been a noisy and populous thoroughfare all that time, was a curious
- affair, for a closely packed rank of stores and shops, with family
- quarters overhead, stretched along both sides of it, from one bank
- of the river to the other. The Bridge was a sort of town to itself; it
- had its inn, its beerhouses, its bakeries, its haberdasheries, its
- food markets, its manufacturing industries, and even its church. It
- looked upon the two neighbors which it linked together- London and
- Southwark- as being well enough, as suburbs, but not otherwise
- particularly important. It was a close corporation, so to speak; it
- was a narrow town, of a single street a fifth of a mile long, its
- population was but a village population, and everybody in it knew
- all his fellow-townsmen intimately, and had known their fathers and
- mothers before them- and all their little family affairs into the
- bargain. It had its aristocracy, of course- its fine old families of
- butchers, and bakers, and what not, who had occupied the same old
- premises for five or six hundred years, and knew the great history
- of the Bridge from beginning to end, and all its strange legends;
- and who always talked bridgy talk, and thought bridgy thoughts, and
- lied in a long, level, direct, substantial bridgy way. It was just the
- sort of population to be narrow and ignorant and self-conceited.
- Children were born on the Bridge, were reared there, grew to old age
- and finally died without ever having set a foot upon any part of the
- world but London Bridge alone. Such people would naturally imagine
- that the mighty and interminable procession which moved through its
- street night and day, with its confused roar of shouts and cries,
- its neighings and bellowings and bleatings and its muffled
- thunder-tramp, was the one great thing in this world, and themselves
- somehow the proprietors of it. And so they were in effect- at least
- they could exhibit it from their windows, and did- for a
- consideration- whenever a returning king or hero gave it a fleeting
- splendor, for there was no place like it for affording a long,
- straight, uninterrupted view of marching columns.
- Men born and reared upon the Bridge found life unendurably dull
- and inane elsewhere. History tells of one of these who left the Bridge
- at the age of seventy-one and retired to the country. But he could
- only fret and toss in his bed; he could not go to sleep, the deep
- stillness was so painful, so awful, so oppressive. When he was worn
- out with it, at last, he fled back to his old home, a lean and haggard
- specter, and fell peacefully to rest and pleasant dreams under the
- lulling music of the lashing waters and the boom and crash and thunder
- of London Bridge.
- In the times of which we are writing, the Bridge furnished 'object
- lessons' in English history, for its children- namely, the livid and
- decaying heads of renowned men impaled upon iron spikes atop of its
- gateways. But we digress.
- Hendon's lodgings were in the little inn on the Bridge. As he
- neared the door with his small friend, a rough voice said:
- 'So, thou'rt come at last! Thou'lt not escape again. I warrant
- thee; and if pounding thy bones to a pudding can teach thee
- somewhat, thou'lt not keep us waiting another time, mayhap'- and
- John Canty put out his hand to seize the boy.
- Miles Hendon stepped in the way, and said:
- 'Not too fast, friend. Thou art needlessly rough, methinks. What
- is the lad to thee?'
- 'If it be any business of thine to make and meddle in others'
- affairs, he is my son.'
- ''Tis a lie!' cried the little king, hotly.
- 'Boldly said, and I believe thee, whether thy small head-piece
- be sound or cracked, my boy. But whether this scurvy ruffian be thy
- father or no, 'tis all one, he shall not have thee to beat thee and
- abuse, according to his threat, so thou prefer to abide with me.'
- 'I do, I do- I know him not, I loathe him, and will die before I
- will go with him.'
- 'Then 'tis settled, and there is naught more to say.'
- 'We will see, as to that!' exclaimed John Canty, striding past
- Hendon to get at the boy; 'by force shall he-'
- 'If thou do but touch him, thou animated offal, I will spit thee
- like a goose!' said Hendon, barring the way and laying his hand upon
- his sword-hilt. Canty drew back. 'Now mark ye,' continued Hendon, 'I
- took this lad under my protection when a mob such as thou would have
- mishandled him, mayhap killed him; dost imagine I will desert him
- now to a worser fate?- for whether thou art his father or no- and
- sooth to say, I think it is a lie- a decent swift death were better
- for such a lad than life in such brute hands as thine. So go thy ways,
- and set quick about it, for I like not much bandying of words, being
- not overpatient in my nature.'
- John Canty moved off, muttering threats and curses, and was
- swallowed from sight in the crowd. Hendon ascended three flights of
- stairs to his room, with his charge, after ordering a meal to be
- sent thither. It was a poor apartment, with a shabby bed and some odds
- and ends of old furniture in it, and was vaguely lighted by a couple
- of sickly candles. The little king dragged himself to the bed and
- lay down upon it, almost exhausted with hunger and fatigue. He had
- been on his feet a good part of a day and a night, for it was now
- two or three o'clock in the morning, and had eaten nothing meantime.
- He murmured drowsily:
- 'Prithee, call me when the table is spread,' and sunk into a
- deep sleep immediately.
- A smile twinkled in Hendon's eye, and he said to himself:
- 'By the mass, the little beggar takes to one's quarters and usurps
- one's bed with as natural and easy a grace as if he owned them- with
- never a by-your-leave or so-please-it-you, or anything of the sort. In
- his diseased ravings he called himself the Prince of Wales, and
- bravely doth he keep up the character. Poor little friendless rat,
- doubtless his mind has been disordered with ill usage. Well, I will be
- his friend; I have saved him, and it draweth me strongly to him;
- already I love the bold-tongued little rascal. How soldierlike he
- faced the smutty rabble and flung back his high defiance! And what a
- comely, sweet and gentle face he hath, now that sleep hath conjured
- away its troubles and its griefs. I will teach him, I will cure his
- malady; yea, I will be his elder brother, and care for him and watch
- over him; and who so would shame him or do him hurt, may order his
- shroud, for though I be burnt for it he shall need it!'
- He bent over the boy and contemplated him with kind and pitying
- interest, tapping the young cheek tenderly and smoothing back the
- tangled curls with his great brown hand. A slight shiver passed over
- the boy's form. Hendon muttered:
- 'See, now, how like a man it was to let him lie here uncovered and
- fill his body with deadly rheums. Now what shall I do? 'Twill wake him
- to take him up and put him within the bed, and he sorely needeth
- sleep.'
- He looked about for extra covering, but finding none, doffed his
- doublet and wrapped the lad in it, saying, 'I am used to nipping air
- and scant apparel, 'tis little I shall mind the cold'- then walked
- up and down the room to keep his blood in motion, soliloquizing as
- before.
- 'His injured mind persuades him he is Prince of Wales; 'twill be
- odd to have a Prince of Wales still with us, now that he that was
- the prince is prince no more, but king- for this poor mind is set upon
- the one fantasy, and will not reason out that now it should cast by
- the prince and call itself the king.... If my father liveth still,
- after these seven years that I have heard naught from home in my
- foreign dungeon, he will welcome the poor lad and give him generous
- shelter for my sake; so will my good elder brother, Arthur; my other
- brother, Hugh- but I will crack his crown, an he interfere, the
- fox-hearted, ill-conditioned animal! Yes, thither will we fare- and
- straightway, too.'
- A servant entered with a smoking meal, disposed it upon a small
- deal table, placed the chairs, and took his departure, leaving such
- cheap lodgers as these to wait upon themselves. The door slammed after
- him, and the noise woke the boy, who sprung to a sitting posture,
- and shot a glad glance about him; then a grieved look came into his
- face and he murmured to himself, with a deep sigh, 'Alack, it was
- but a dream. Woe is me.' Next he noticed Miles Hendon's doublet-
- glanced from that to Hendon, comprehended the sacrifice that had
- been made for him, and said, gently:
- 'Thou art good to me, yes, thou art very good to me. Take it and
- put it on- I shall not need it more.'
- Then he got up and walked to the washstand in the corner, and
- stood there waiting. Hendon said in a cheery voice:
- 'We'll have a right hearty sup and bite now, for everything is
- savory and smoking hot, and that and thy nap together will make thee a
- little man again, never fear!'
- The boy made no answer, but bent a steady look, that was filled
- with grave surprise, and also somewhat touched with impatience, upon
- the tall knight of the sword. Hendon was puzzled, and said:
- 'What's amiss?'
- 'Good sir, I would wash me.'
- 'Oh, is that all! Ask no permission of Miles Hendon for aught thou
- cravest. Make thyself perfectly free here and welcome, with all that
- are his belongings.'
- Still the boy stood, and moved not; more, he tapped the floor once
- or twice with his small impatient foot. Hendon was wholly perplexed.
- Said he:
- 'Bless us, what is it?'
- 'Prithee, pour the water, and make not so many words!'
- Hendon, suppressing a horse-laugh, and saying to himself, 'By
- all the saints, but this is admirable!' stepped briskly forward and
- did the small insolent's bidding; then stood by, in a sort of
- stupefaction, until the command, 'Come- the towel!' woke him sharply
- up. He took up a towel from under the boy's nose and handed it to him,
- without comment. He now proceeded to comfort his own face with a wash,
- and while he was at it his adopted child seated himself at the table
- and prepared to fall to. Hendon despatched his ablutions with
- alacrity, then drew back the other chair and was about to place
- himself at table, when the boy said, indignantly:
- 'Forbear! Wouldst sit in the presence of the king?'
- This blow staggered Hendon to his foundations. He muttered to
- himself, 'Lo, the poor thing's madness is up with the time! it hath
- changed with the great change that is come to the realm, and now in
- fancy is he king! Good lack, I must humor the conceit, too- there is
- no other way- faith, he would order me to the Tower, else!'
- And pleased with this jest, he removed the chair from the table,
- took his stand behind the king, and proceeded to wait upon him in
- the courtliest way he was capable of.
- When the king ate, the rigor of his royal dignity relaxed a
- little, and with his growing contentment came a desire to talk. He
- said:
- 'I think thou callest thyself Miles Hendon, if I heard thee
- aright?'
- 'Yes, sire,' Miles replied then observed to himself, 'If I must
- humor the poor lad's madness, I must sire him, I must majesty him, I
- must not go by halves, I must stick at nothing that belongeth to the
- part I play, else shall I play it ill and work evil to this charitable
- and kindly cause.'
- The king warmed his heart with a second glass of wine, and said:
- 'I would know thee- tell me thy story. Thou hast a gallant way with
- thee, and a noble- art nobly born?'
- 'We are of the tail of the nobility, good your majesty. My
- father is a baronet- one of the smaller lords, by knight
- service*(8)- Sir Richard Hendon, of Hendon Hall, by Monk's Holm in
- Kent.'
- 'The name has escaped my memory. Go on- tell me thy story.'
- ''Tis not much, your majesty, yet perchance it may beguile a short
- half-hour for want of a better. My father, Sir Richard, is very
- rich, and of a most generous nature. My mother died whilst I was yet a
- boy. I have two brothers: Arthur, my elder, with a soul like to his
- father's; and Hugh, younger than I, a mean spirit, covetous,
- treacherous, vicious, underhanded- a reptile. Such was he from the
- cradle; such was he ten years past, when I last saw him- a ripe rascal
- at nineteen, I being twenty then, and Arthur twenty-two. There is none
- other of us but the Lady Edith, my cousin- she was sixteen, then-
- beautiful, gentle, good, the daughter of an earl, the last of her
- race, heiress of a great fortune and a lapsed title. My father was her
- guardian. I loved her and she loved me; but she was betrothed to
- Arthur from the cradle, and Sir Richard would not suffer the
- contract to be broken. Arthur loved another maid, and bade us be of
- good cheer and hold fast to the hope that delay and luck together
- would some day give success to our several causes. Hugh loved the Lady
- Edith's fortune, though in truth he said it was herself he loved-
- but then 'twas his way, alway, to say one thing and mean the other.
- But he lost his arts upon the girl; he could deceive my father, but
- none else. My father loved him best of us all, and trusted and
- believed him; for he was the youngest child and others hated him-
- these qualities being in all ages sufficient to win a parent's dearest
- love; and he had a smooth persuasive tongue, with an admirable gift of
- lying- and these be qualities which do mightily assist a blind
- affection to cozen itself. I was wild- in troth I might go yet farther
- and say very wild, though 'twas a wildness of an innocent sort,
- since it hurt none but me, brought shame to none, nor loss, nor had in
- it any taint of crime or baseness, or what might not beseem mine
- honorable degree.
- 'Yet did my brother Hugh turn these faults to good account- he
- seeing that our brother Arthur's health was but indifferent, and
- hoping the worst might work him profit were I swept out of the path-
- so- but 'twere a long tale, good my liege, and little worth the
- telling. Briefly, then, this brother did deftly magnify my faults
- and make them crimes; ending his base work with finding a silken
- ladder in mine apartments- conveyed thither by his own means- and
- did convince my father by this, and suborned evidence of servants
- and other lying knaves, that I was minded to carry off my Edith and
- marry with her, in rank defiance of his will.
- 'Three years of banishment from home and England might make a
- soldier and a man of me, my father said, and teach me some degree of
- wisdom. I fought out my long probation in the continental wars,
- tasting sumptuously of hard knocks, privation, and adventure; but in
- my last battle I was taken captive, and during the seven years that
- have waxed and waned since then, a foreign dungeon hath harbored me.
- Through wit and courage I won to the free air at last, and fled hither
- straight; and am but just arrived, right poor in purse and raiment,
- and poorer still in knowledge of what these dull seven years have
- wrought at Hendon Hall, its people and belongings. So please you, sir,
- my meager tale is told.'
- 'Thou hast been shamefully abused!' said the little king, with a
- flashing eye. 'But I will right thee- by the cross will I! The king
- hath said it.'
- Then, fired by the story of Miles's wrongs, he loosed his tongue
- and poured the history of his own recent misfortunes into the ears
- of his astonished listener. When he had finished, Miles said to
- himself.
- 'Lo, what an imagination he hath! Verily this is no common mind;
- else, crazed or sane, it could not weave so straight and gaudy a
- tale as this out of the airy nothings wherewith it hath wrought this
- curious romaunt. Poor ruined little head, it shall not lack friend
- or shelter whilst I bide with the living. He shall never leave my
- side; he shall be my pet, my little comrade. And he shall be cured!-
- aye, made whole and sound- then will he make himself a name- and proud
- shall I be to say, "Yes, he is mine- I took him, a homeless little
- ragamuffin, but I saw what was in him, and I said his name would be
- heard some day- behold him, observe him- was I right?"'
- The king spoke- in a thoughtful, measured voice:
- 'Thou didst save me injury and shame, perchance my life, and so my
- crown. Such service demandeth rich reward. Name thy desire, and so
- it be within the compass of my royal power, it is thine.'
- This fantastic suggestion startled Hendon out of his reverie. He
- was about to thank the king and put the matter aside with saying he
- bad only done his duty and desired no reward, but a wiser thought came
- into his head, and he asked leave to be silent a few moments and
- consider the gracious offer- an idea which the king gravely
- approved, remarking that it was best to be not too hasty with a
- thing of such great import.
- Miles reflected during some moments, then said to himself, 'Yes,
- that is the thing to do- by any other means it were impossible to
- get at it- and certes, this hour's experience has taught me 'twould be
- most wearing and inconvenient to continue it as it is. Yes, I will
- propose it; 'twas a happy accident that I did not throw the chance
- away.' Then he dropped upon one knee and said:
- 'My poor service went not beyond the limit of a subject's simple
- duty, and therefore hath no merit; but since your majesty is pleased
- to hold it worthy some reward, I take heart of grace to make
- petition to this effect. Near four hundred years ago, as your grace
- knoweth, there being ill blood betwixt John, king of England, and
- the king of France, it was decreed that two champions should fight
- together in the lists, and so settle the dispute by what is called the
- arbitrament of God. These two kings, and the Spanish king, being
- assembled to witness and judge the conflict, the French champion
- appeared; but so redoubtable was he that our English knights refused
- to measure weapons with him. So the matter, which was a weighty one,
- was like to go against the English monarch by default. Now in the
- Tower lay the Lord de Courcy, the mightiest arm in England, stripped
- of his honors and possessions, and wasting with long captivity. Appeal
- was made to him; he gave assent, and came forth arrayed for battle;
- but no sooner did the Frenchman glimpse his huge frame and hear his
- famous name but he fled away, and the French king's cause was lost.
- King John restored De Courcy's titles and possessions, and said, "Name
- thy wish and thou shalt have it, though it cost me half my kingdom";
- whereat De Courcy, kneeling, as I do now, made answerer, "This,
- then, I ask, my liege; that I and my successors may have and hold
- the privilege of remaining covered in the presence of the kings of
- England, henceforth while the throne shall last." The boon was
- granted, as your majesty knoweth; and there hath been no time, these
- four hundred years, that that line has failed of an heir; and so, even
- unto this day, the head of that ancient house still weareth his hat or
- helm before the king's majesty, without let or hindrance, and this
- none other may do.*(9) Invoking this precedent in aid of my prayer,
- I beseech the king to grant to me but this one grace and privilege- to
- my more than sufficient reward- and none other, to wit: that I and
- my heirs, forever, may sit in the presence of the majesty of England!'
- 'Rise, Sir Miles Hendon, knight,' said the king, gravely- giving
- the accolade with Hendon's sword- 'rise, and seat thyself. Thy
- petition is granted. While England remains, and the crown continues,
- the privilege shall not lapse.'
- His majesty walked apart, musing, and Hendon dropped into a
- chair at table, observing to himself, ''Twas a brave thought, and hath
- wrought me a mighty deliverance; my legs are grievously wearied. An
- I had not thought of that, I must have had to stand for weeks, till my
- poor lad's wits are cured.' After a little he went on, 'And so I am
- become a knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows! A most odd and
- strange position, truly, for one so matter-of-fact as I. I will not
- laugh- no, God forbid, for this thing which is so substanceless to
- me is real to him. And to me, also, in one way, it is not a falsity,
- for it reflects with truth the sweet and generous spirit that is in
- him.' After a pause: 'Ah, what if he should call me by my fine title
- before folk!- there'd be a merry contrast betwixt my glory and my
- raiment! But no matter; let him call me what he will, so it please
- him; I shall be content.'
- CHAPTER XIII
- The Dissappearance of the Prince
-
- A HEAVY drowsiness presently fell upon the two comrades. The
- king said:
- 'Remove these rags'- meaning his clothing.
- Hendon disappareled the boy without dissent or remark, tucked
- him up in bed, then glanced about the room, saying to himself,
- ruefully, 'He hath taken my bed again, as before- marry, what shall
- I do?' The little king observed his perplexity, and dissipated it with
- a word. He said, sleepily:
- 'Thou wilt sleep athwart the door, and guard it.' In a moment more
- he was out of his troubles, in a deep slumber.
- 'Dear heart, he should have been born a king!' muttered Hendon,
- admiringly, 'he playeth the part to a marvel.'
- Then he stretched himself across the door, on the floor, saying
- contentedly:
- 'I have lodged worse for seven years; 'twould be but ill gratitude
- to Him above to find fault with this.'
- He dropped asleep as the dawn appeared. Toward noon he rose,
- uncovered his unconscious ward- a section at a time- and took his
- measure with a string. The king awoke, just as he had completed his
- work, complained of the cold, and asked what he was doing.
- ''Tis done now, my liege,' said Hendon; 'I have a bit of
- business outside, but will presently return; sleep thou again- thou
- needest it. There- let me cover thy head also- thou'lt be warm the
- sooner.'
- The king was back in dreamland before this speech was ended. Miles
- slipped softly out, and slipped as softly in again, in the course of
- thirty or forty minutes, with a complete second-hand suit of boy's
- clothing, of cheap material, and showing signs of wear; but tidy,
- and suited to the season of the year. He seated himself and began to
- overhaul his purchase, mumbling to himself:
- 'A longer purse would have got a better sort, but when one has not
- the long purse one must be content with what a short one may do-
-
- '"There was a woman in our town,
- In our town did dwell"-
-
- 'He stirred, methinks- I must sing in a less thunderous key;
- 'tis not good to mar his sleep, with this journey before him and he so
- wearied out, poorchap.... This garment- 'tis well enough- a stitch
- here and another one there will set it aright. This other is better,
- albeit a stitch or two will not come amiss in it, likewise.... These
- be very good and sound, and will keep his small feet warm and dry-
- an odd new thing to him, belike, since he has doubtless been used to
- foot it bare, winters and summers the same.... Would thread were
- bread, seeing one getteth a year's sufficiency for a farthing, and
- such a brave big needle without cost, for mere love. Now shall I
- have the demon's own time to thread it!'
- And so he had. He did as men have always done, and probably always
- will do, to the end of time- held the needle still, and tried to
- thrust the thread through the eye, which is the opposite of a
- woman's way. Time and time again the thread missed the mark, going
- sometimes on one side of the needle, sometimes on the other, sometimes
- doubling up against the shaft; but he was patient, having been through
- these experiences before, when he was soldiering. He succeeded at
- last, and took up the garment that had lain waiting, meantime,
- across his lap, and began his work. 'The inn is paid- the breakfast
- that is to come, included- and there is wherewithal left to buy a
- couple of donkeys and meet our little costs for the two or three
- days betwixt this and the plenty that awaits us at Hendon Hall-
-
- '"She loved her hus"-
-
- 'Body o' me! I have driven the needle under my nail!... It matters
- little- 'tis not a novelty- yet 'tis not a convenience, neither.... We
- shall be merry there, little one, never doubt it! Thy troubles will
- vanish there, and likewise thy sad distemper-
-
- '"She loved her husband dearilee,
- But another man"-
-
- 'These be noble large stitches!'- holding the garment up and
- viewing it admiringly- 'they have a grandeur and a majesty that do
- cause these small stingy ones of the tailor-man to look mighty
- paltry and plebeian-
-
- '"She loved her husband dearilee,
- But another man he loved she,"-
-
- 'Marry, 'tis done- a goodly piece of work, too, and wrought with
- expedition. Now will I wake him, apparel him, pour for him, feed
- him, and then will we hie us to the mart by the Tabard inn in
- Southwark and- be pleased to rise, my liege!- he answereth not- what
- ho, my liege!- of a truth must I profane his sacred person with a
- touch, sith his slumber is deaf to speech. What!'
- He threw back the covers- the boy was gone!
- He stared about him in speechless astonishment for a moment;
- noticed for the first time that his ward's ragged raiment was also
- missing, then he began to rage and storm, and shout for the
- inn-keeper. At that moment a servant entered with the breakfast.
- 'Explain, thou limb of Satan, or thy time is come! 'roared the man
- of war, and made so savage a spring toward the waiter that this latter
- could not find his tongue, for the instant, for fright and surprise.
- 'Where is the boy?'
- In disjointed and trembling syllables the man gave the information
- desired.
- 'You were hardly gone from the place, your worship, when a youth
- came running and said it was your worship's will that the boy come
- to you straight, at the bridge-end on the Southwark side. I brought
- him thither; and when he woke the lad and gave his message, the lad
- did grumble some little for being disturbed 'so early,' as he called
- it, but straightway trussed on his rags and went with the youth,
- only saying it had been better manners that your worship came
- yourself, not sent a stranger- and so-'
- 'And so thou'rt a fool!- a fool, and easily cozened- hang all
- thy breed! Yet mayhap no hurt is done. Possibly no harm is meant the
- boy. I will go fetch him. Make the table ready. Stay! the coverings of
- the bed were disposed as if one lay beneath them- happened that by
- accident?'
- 'I know not, good your worship. I saw the youth meddle with
- them- he that came for the boy.'
- 'Thousand deaths! 'twas done to deceive me- 'tis plain 'twas
- done to gain time. Hark ye! Was that youth alone?'
- 'All alone, your worship.'
- 'Art sure?'
- 'Sure, your worship.'
- 'Collect thy scattered wits- bethink thee- take time, man.'
- After a moment's thought, the servant said:
- 'When he came, none came with him; but now I remember me that as
- the two stepped into the throng of the Bridge, a ruffian-looking man
- plunged out from some near place; and just as he was joining them-'
- 'What then?- out with it!' thundered the impatient Hendon,
- interrupting.
- 'Just then the crowd lapped them up and closed them in, and I
- saw no more, being called by my master, who was in a rage because a
- joint that the scrivener had ordered was forgot, though I take all the
- saints to witness that to blame me for that miscarriage were like
- holding the unborn babe to judgment for sins com-'
- 'Out of my sight, idiot! Thy prating drives me mad! Hold!
- whither art flying? Canst not bide still an instant? Went they
- toward Southwark?'
- 'Even so, your worship- for, as I said before, as to that
- detestable joint, the babe unborn is no whit more blameless than-'
- 'Art here yet! And prating still? Vanish, lest I throttle thee!'
- The servitor vanished. Hendon followed after him, passed him, and
- plunged down the stairs two steps at a stride, muttering, ''Tis that
- scurvy villain that claimed he was his son. I have lost thee, my
- poor little mad master- it is a bitter thought- and I had come to love
- thee so! No! by book and bell, not lost! Not lost, for I will
- ransack the land till I find thee again. Poor child, yonder is his
- breakfast- and mine, but I have no hunger now- so, let the rats have
- it- speed, speed! that is the word!' As he wormed his swift way
- through the noisy multitudes upon the Bridge, he several times said to
- himself- clinging to the thought as if it were a particularly pleasing
- one: 'He grumbled but he went- he went, yes, because he thought
- Miles Hendon asked it, sweet lad- he would ne'er have done it for
- another, I know it well!'
- CHAPTER XIV
- 'Le Roi est Mort - Vive le Roi'
-
- TOWARD daylight of the same morning, Tom Canty stirred out of a
- heavy sleep and opened his eyes in the dark. He lay silent a few
- moments, trying to analyze his confused thoughts and impressions,
- and get some sort of meaning out of them, then suddenly he burst out
- in a rapturous but guarded voice:
- 'I see it all, I see it all! Now God be thanked, I am, indeed,
- awake at last! Come, joy! vanish, sorrow! Ho, Nan! Bet! kick off
- your straw and hie ye hither to my side, till I do pour into your
- unbelieving ears the wildest madcap dream that ever the spirits of
- night did conjure up to astonish the soul of man withal!... Ho, Nan, I
- say! Bet!'...
- A dim form appeared at his side, and a voice said:
- 'Wilt deign to deliver thy commands?'
- 'Commands?... Oh, woe is me, I know thy voice! Speak, thou- who am
- I?'
- 'Thou? In sooth, yesternight wert thou the Prince of Wales, to-day
- art thou my most gracious liege, Edward, king of England.'
- Tom buried his head among his pillows, murmuring plaintively:
- 'Alack, it was no dream! Go to thy rest, sweet sir- leave me to my
- sorrows.'
- Tom slept again, and after a time he had this pleasant dream. He
- thought it was summer and he was playing, all alone, in the fair
- meadow called Goodman's Fields, when a dwarf only a foot high, with
- long red whiskers and a humped back, appeared to him suddenly and
- said, 'Dig, by that stump.' He did so, and found twelve bright new
- pennies- wonderful riches! Yet this was not the best of it; for the
- dwarf said:
- 'I know thee. Thou art a good lad and deserving; thy distresses
- shall end, for the day of thy reward is come. Dig here every seventh
- day, and thou shalt find always the same treasure, twelve bright new
- pennies. Tell none- keep the secret.'
- Then the dwarf vanished, and Tom flew to Offal Court with his
- prize, saying to himself, 'Every night will I give my father a
- penny; he will think I begged it, it will glad his heart, and I
- shall no more be beaten. One penny every week the good priest that
- teacheth me shall have; mother, Nan, and Bet the other four. We be
- done with hunger and rags now, done with fears and frets and savage
- usage.'
- In his dream he reached his sordid home all out of breath, but
- with eyes dancing with grateful enthusiasm; cast four of his pennies
- into his mother's lap and cried out:
- 'They are for thee!- all of them, every one!- for thee and Nan and
- Bet- and honestly come by, not begged nor stolen!'
- The happy and astonished mother strained him to her breast and
- exclaimed:
- 'It waxeth late- may it please your majesty to rise?'
- Ah, that was not the answer he was expecting. The dream had
- snapped asunder- he was awake.
- He opened his eyes- the richly clad First Lord of the Bedchamber
- was kneeling by his couch. The gladness of the lying dream faded away-
- the poor boy recognized that he was still a captive and a king. The
- room was filled with courtiers clothed in purple mantles- the mourning
- color- and with noble servants of the monarch. Tom sat up in bed and
- gazed out from the heavy silken curtains upon this fine company.
- The weighty business of dressing began, and one courtier after
- another knelt and paid his court and offered to the little king his
- condolences upon his heavy loss, while the dressing proceeded. In
- the beginning, a shirt was taken up by the Chief Equerry in Waiting,
- who passed it to the First Lord of the Buckhounds, who passed it to
- the Second Gentleman of the Bedchamber, who passed it to the Head
- Ranger of Windsor Forest, who passed it to the Third Groom of the
- Stole, who passed it to the Chancellor Royal of the Duchy of
- Lancaster, who passed it to the Master of the Wardrobe, who passed
- it to Norroy King-at-Arms, who passed it to the Constable of the
- Tower, who passed it to the Chief Steward of the Household, who passed
- it to the Hereditary Grand Diaperer, who passed it to the Lord High
- Admiral of England, who passed it to the Archbishop of Canterbury, who
- passed it to the First Lord of the Bedchamber, who took what was
- left of it and put it on Tom. Poor little wondering chap, it
- reminded him of passing buckets at a fire.
- Each garment in its turn had to go through this slow and solemn
- process; consequently Tom grew very weary of the ceremony; so weary
- that he felt an almost gushing gratefulness when he at last saw his
- long silken hose begin the journey down the line and knew that the end
- of the matter was drawing near. But he exulted too soon. The First
- Lord of the Bedchamber received the hose and was about to encase Tom's
- legs in them, when a sudden flush invaded his face and he hurriedly
- hustled the things back into the hands of the Archbishop of Canterbury
- with an astounded look and a whispered, 'See, my lord!'- pointing to a
- something connected with the hose. The Archbishop paled, then flushed,
- and passed the hose to the Lord High Admiral, whispering 'See, my
- lord!' The Admiral passed the hose to the Hereditary Grand Diaperer,
- and had hardly breath enough in his body to ejaculate, 'See, my lord!'
- The hose drifted backward along the line, to the Chief Steward of
- the Household, the Constable of the Tower, Norroy King-at-Arms, the
- Master of the Wardrobe, the Chancellor Royal of the Duchy of
- Lancaster, the Third Groom of the Stole, the Head Ranger of Windsor
- Forest, the Second Gentleman of the Bedchamber, the First Lord of
- the Buckhounds- accompanied always with that amazed and frightened
- 'See! see!'- till they finally reached the hands of the Chief
- Equerry in Waiting, who gazed a moment, with a pallid face, upon
- what had caused all this dismay, then hoarsely whispered 'Body of my
- life, a tag gone from a truss point!- to the Tower with the Head
- Keeper of the King's Hose!'- after which he leaned upon the shoulder
- of the First Lord of the Buckhounds to regather his vanished
- strength while fresh hose, without any damaged strings to them, were
- brought.
- But all things must have an end, and so in time Tom Canty was in a
- condition to get out of bed. The proper official poured water, the
- proper official engineered the washing, the proper official stood by
- with a towel, and by and by Tom got safely through the purifying stage
- and was ready for the services of the Hairdresser-Royal. When he at
- length emerged from his master's hands, he was a gracious figure and
- as pretty as a girl, in his mantle and trunks of purple satin, and
- purple-plumed cap. He now moved in state toward his breakfast-room,
- through the midst of the courtly assemblage; and as he passed, these
- fell back, leaving his way free, and dropped upon their knees.
- After breakfast he was conducted, with regal ceremony, attended by
- his great officers and his guard of fifty Gentlemen Pensioners bearing
- gilt battle-axes, to the throne-room, where he proceeded to transact
- business of state. His 'uncle' Lord Hertford, took his stand by the
- throne, to assist he royal mind with wise counsel.
- The body of illustrious men named by the late king as his
- executors, appeared, to ask Tom's approval of certain acts of
- theirs- rather a form, and yet not wholly a form, since there was no
- Protector as yet. The Archbishop of Canterbury made report of the
- decree of the Council of Executors concerning the obsequies of his
- late most illustrious majesty, and finished by reading the
- signatures of the executors, to wit: the Archbishop of Canterbury; the
- Lord Chancellor of England; William Lord St. John; John Lord
- Russell; Edward Earl of Hertford; John Viscount Lisle; Cuthbert Bishop
- of Durham-
- Tom was not listening- an earlier clause of the document was
- puzzling him. At this point he turned and whispered to Lord Hertford:
- 'What day did he say the burial hath been appointed for?'
- 'The 16th of the coming month, my liege.'
- ''Tis a strange folly. Will he keep?'
- Poor chap, he was still new to the customs of royalty; he was used
- to seeing the forlorn dead of Offal Court hustled out of the way
- with a very different sort of expedition. However, the Lord Hertford
- set his mind at rest with a word or two.
- A secretary of state presented an order of the council
- appointing the morrow at eleven for the reception of the foreign
- ambassadors, and desired the king's assent.
- Tom turned an inquiring look toward Hertford, who whispered:
- 'Your majesty will signify consent. They come to testify their
- royal masters' sense of the heavy calamity which hath visited your
- grace and the realm of England.'
- Tom did as he was bidden. Another secretary began to read a
- preamble concerning the expenses of the late king's household, which
- had amounted to L28,000 during the preceding six months- a sum so vast
- that it made Tom Canty gasp; he gasped again when the fact appeared
- that L20,000 of this money were still owing and unpaid;*(10) and
- once more when it appeared that the king's coffers were about empty,
- and his twelve hundred servants much embarrassed for lack of the wages
- due them. Tom spoke out, with lively apprehension.
- 'We be going to the dogs, 'tis plain. 'Tis meet and necessary that
- we take a smaller house and set the servants at large, sith they be of
- no value but to make delay, and trouble one with offices that harass
- the spirit and shame the soul, they misbecoming any but a doll, that
- hath nor brains nor hands to help itself withal. I remember me of a
- small house that standeth over against the fish-market, by
- Billingsgate-'
- A sharp pressure upon Tom's arm stopped his foolish tongue and
- sent a blush to his face; but no countenance there betrayed any sign
- that this strange speech had been remarked or given concern.
- A secretary made report that forasmuch as the late king had
- provided in his will for conferring the ducal degree upon the Earl
- of Hertford and raising his brother, Sir Thomas Seymour, to the
- peerage, and likewise Hertford's son to an earldom, together similar
- aggrandizements to other great servants of the crown, the council
- had resolved to hold a sitting on the 16th February for the delivering
- and confirming of these honors; and that meantime the late king not
- having granted, in writing, estates suitable to the support of these
- dignities, the council, knowing his private wishes in that regard, had
- thought proper to grant to Seymour '500 pound lands' and to Hertford's
- son '800 pound lands, and 300 pound of the next bishop's lands which
- should fall vacant,'- his present majesty being willing.*(11)
- Tom was about to blurt out something about the propriety of paying
- the late king's debts first before squandering all his money; but a
- timely touch upon his arm, from the thoughtful Hertford, saved him
- this indiscretion; wherefore he gave the royal assent, without
- spoken comment, but with much inward discomfort. While he sat
- reflecting a moment over the ease with which he was doing strange
- and glittering miracles, a happy thought shot into his mind: why not
- make his mother Duchess of Offal Court and give her an estate? But a
- sorrowful thought swept it instantly away; he was only a king in name,
- these grave veterans and great nobles were his masters; to them his
- mother was only the creature of a diseased mind; they would simply
- listen to his project with unbelieving ears, then send for the doctor.
- The dull work went tediously on. Petitions were read, and
- proclamations, patents, and all manner of wordy, repetitious and
- wearisome papers relating to the public business; and at last Tom
- sighed pathetically and murmured to himself, 'In what have I offended,
- that the good God should take me away from the fields and the free air
- and the sunshine, to shut me up here and make me a king and afflict me
- so?' Then his poor muddled head nodded awhile, and presently dropped
- to his shoulder; and the business of the empire came to a standstill
- for want of that august factor, the ratifying power. Silence ensued
- around the slumbering child, and the sages of the realm ceased from
- their deliberations.
- During the forenoon, Tom had an enjoyable hour, by permission of
- his keepers, Hertford and St. John, with the Lady Elizabeth and the
- little Lady Jane Grey; though the spirits of the princesses were
- rather subdued by the mighty stroke that had fallen upon the royal
- house; and at the end of the visit his 'elder sister'- afterward the
- 'Bloody Mary' of history- chilled him with a solemn interview which
- had but one merit in his eyes, its brevity. He had a few moments to
- himself, and then a slim lad of about twelve years of age was admitted
- to his presence, whose clothing, except his snowy ruff and the laces
- about his wrists, was of black- doublet, hose and all. He bore no
- badge of mourning but a knot of purple ribbon on his shoulder. He
- advanced hesitatingly, with head bowed and bare, and dropped upon
- one knee in front of Tom. Tom sat still and contemplated him soberly
- for a moment. Then he said:
- 'Rise, lad. Who art thou? What wouldst have?'
- The boy rose, and stood at graceful ease, but with an aspect of
- concern in his face. He said:
- 'Of a surety thou must remember me, my lord. I am thy
- whipping-boy.
- 'My whipping-boy?'
- 'The same, your grace, I am Humphrey- Humphrey Marlow.'
- Tom perceived that here was some one whom his keepers ought to
- have posted him about. The situation was delicate. What should he do?-
- pretend he knew this lad, and then betray, by his every utterance,
- that he had never heard of him before? No, that would not do. An
- idea came to his relief: accidents like this might be likely to happen
- with some frequency, now that business urgencies would often call
- Hertford and St. John from his side, they being members of the council
- of executors; therefore perhaps it would be well to strike out a
- plan himself to meet the requirements of such emergencies. Yes, that
- would be a wise course- he would practise on this boy, and see what
- sort of success he might achieve. So he stroked his brow, perplexedly,
- a moment or two, and presently said:
- 'Now I seem to remember thee somewhat- but my wit is clogged and
- dim with suffering-'
- 'Alack, my poor master!' ejaculated the whipping-boy, with
- feeling; adding, to himself, 'In truth 'tis as they said- his mind
- is gone- alas, poor soul! But misfortune catch me, how am I
- forgetting! they said one must not seem to observe that aught is wrong
- with him.'
- ''Tis strange how my memory doth wanton with me these days,'
- said Tom. 'But mind it not- I mend apace- a little clue doth often
- serve to bring me back again the things and names which had escaped
- me. (And not they, only, forsooth, but e'en such as I ne'er heard
- before- as this lad shall see.) Give thy business speech.'
- ''Tis matter of small weight, my liege, yet will I touch upon
- it, an it please your grace. Two days gone by, when your majesty
- faulted thrice in your Greek- in the morning lessons- dost remember
- it?'
- 'Ye-e-s- methinks I do. (It is not much of a lie- an I had meddled
- with the Greek at all, I had not faulted simply thrice, but forty
- times). Yes, I do recall it now- go on.'
- -'The master, being wroth with what he termed such slovenly and
- doltish work, did promise that he would soundly whip me for it- and-'
- 'Whip thee!' said Tom, astonished out of his presence of mind.
- 'Why should he whip thee for faults of mine?'
- 'Ah, your grace forgetteth again. He always scourgeth me, when
- thou dost fail in thy lessons.'
- 'True, true- I had forgot. Thou teachest me in private- then if
- I fail, he argueth that thy office was lamely done, and-'
- 'Oh, my liege, what words are these? I, the humblest of thy
- servants, presume to teach thee!'
- 'Then where is thy blame? What riddle is this? Am I in truth
- gone mad, or is it thou? Explain- speak out.'
- 'But, good your majesty, there's naught that needeth
- simplifying. None may visit the sacred person of the Prince of Wales
- with blows; wherefore when he faulteth, 'tis I that take them; and
- meet it is and right, for that it is mine office and my
- livelihood.'*(12)
- Tom stared at the tranquil boy, observing to himself, 'Lo, it is a
- wonderful thing- a most strange and curious trade; I marvel they
- have not hired a boy to take my combings and my dressings for me-
- would heaven they would!- an they will do this thing, I will take my
- lashings in mine own person, giving thanks to God for the change.'
- Then he said aloud:
- 'And hast thou been beaten, poor friend, according to the
- promise?'
- 'No, good your majesty, my punishment was appointed for this
- day, and peradventure it may be annulled, as unbefitting the season of
- mourning that is come upon us; I know not, and so have made bold to
- come hither and remind your grace about your gracious promise to
- intercede in my behalf-'
- 'With the master? To save thee thy whipping?'
- 'Ah, thou dost remember!'
- 'My memory mendeth, thou seest. Set thy mind at ease- thy back
- shall go unscathed- I will see to it.'
- 'Oh, thanks, my good lord!' cried the boy, dropping upon his
- knee again. 'Mayhap I have ventured far enow; and yet'....
- Seeing Master Humphrey hesitate, Tom encouraged him to go on,
- saying he was 'in the granting mood.'
- 'Then will I speak it out, for it lieth near my heart. Sith thou
- art no more Prince of Wales but king, thou canst order matters as thou
- wilt, with none to say thee nay; wherefore it is not in reason that
- thou wilt longer vex thyself with dreary studies, but wilt burn thy
- books and turn thy mind to things less irksome. Then am I ruined,
- and mine orphan sisters with me!'
- 'Ruined? Prithee, how?'
- 'My back is my bread, O my gracious liege! if it go idle, I
- starve. An thou cease from study, mine office is gone, thou'lt need no
- whipping-boy. Do not turn me away!'
- Tom was touched with this pathetic distress. He said, with a right
- royal burst of generosity:
- 'Discomfort thyself no further, lad. Thine office shall be
- permanent in thee and thy line, forever.' Then he struck the boy a
- light blow on the shoulder with the flat of his sword, exclaiming,
- 'Rise, Humphrey Marlow, Hereditary Grand Whipping-Boy to the royal
- house of England! Banish sorrow- I will betake me to my books again,
- and study so ill that they must in justice treble thy wage, so
- mightily shall the business of thine office be augmented.'
- The grateful Humphrey responded fervidly:
- 'Thanks, oh, most noble master, this princely lavishness doth
- far surpass my most distempered dreams of fortune. Now shall I be
- happy all my days, and all the house of Marlow after me.'
- Tom had wit enough to perceive that here was a lad who could be
- useful to him. He encouraged Humphrey to talk, and he was nothing
- loath. He was delighted to believe that he was helping in Tom's
- 'cure'; for always, as soon as he had finished calling back to Tom's
- diseased mind the various particulars of his experiences and
- adventures in the royal schoolroom and elsewhere about the palace,
- he noticed that Tom was then able to 'recall' the circumstances
- quite clearly. At the end of an hour Tom found himself well
- freighted with very valuable information concerning personages and
- matters pertaining to the court; so he resolved to draw instruction
- from this source daily; and to this end he would give order to admit
- Humphrey to the royal closet whenever he might come, provided the
- majesty of England was not engaged with other people.
- Humphrey had hardly been dismissed when my Lord Hertford arrived
- with more trouble for Tom. He said that the lords of the council,
- fearing that some overwrought report of the king's damaged health
- might have leaked out and got abroad, they deemed it wise and best
- that his majesty should begin to dine in public after a day or two-
- his wholesome complexion and vigorous step, assisted by a carefully
- guarded repose of manner and ease and grace of demeanor, would more
- surely quiet the general pulse- in case any evil rumors had gone
- about- than any other scheme that could be devised.
- Then the earl proceeded, very delicately, to instruct Tom as to
- the observances proper to the stately occasion, under the rather
- thin disguise of 'reminding' him concerning things already known to
- him; but to his vast gratification it turned out that Tom needed
- very little help in this line- he had been making use of Humphrey in
- that direction, for Humphrey had mentioned that within a few days he
- was to begin to dine in public; having gathered it from the
- swift-winged gossip of the court. Tom kept these facts to himself,
- however.
- Seeing the royal memory so improved, the earl ventured to apply
- a few tests to it, in an apparently casual way, to find out how far
- its amendment had progressed. The results were happy, here and
- there, in spots- spots where Humphrey's tracks remained- and, on the
- whole, my lord was greatly pleased and encouraged. So encouraged was
- he, indeed, that he spoke up and said in a quite hopeful voice:
- 'Now am I persuaded that if your majesty will but tax your
- memory yet a little further, it will resolve the puzzle of the Great
- Seal- a loss which was of moment yesterday, although of none to-day,
- since its term of service ended with our late lord's life. May it
- please your grace to make the trial?'
- Tom was at sea- a Great Seal was a something which he was
- totally unacquainted with. After a moment's hesitation he looked up
- innocently and asked:
- 'What was it like, my lord?'
- The earl started, almost imperceptibly, muttering to himself,
- 'Alack, his wits are flown again!- it was ill wisdom to lead him on to
- strain them-' then he deftly turned the talk to other matters, with
- the purpose of sweeping the unlucky Seal out of Tom's thoughts- a
- purpose which easily succeeded.
- CHAPTER XV
- Tom as King
-
- THE next day the foreign ambassadors came, with their gorgeous
- trains; and Tom, throned in awful state, received them. The
- splendors of the scene delighted his eye and fired his imagination
- at first, but the audience was long and dreary, and so were most of
- the addresses- wherefore, what began as a pleasure, grew into
- weariness and homesickness by and by. Tom said the words which
- Hertford put into his mouth from time to time, and tried hard to
- acquit himself satisfactorily, but he was too new to such things,
- and too ill at ease to accomplish more than a tolerable success. He
- looked sufficiently like a king, but he was ill able to feel like one.
- He was cordially glad when the ceremony was ended.
- The larger part of his day was 'wasted'- as he termed it, in his
- own mind- in labors pertaining to his royal office. Even the two hours
- devoted to certain princely pastimes and recreations were rather a
- burden to him than otherwise, they were so fettered by restrictions
- and ceremonious observances. However, he had a private hour with his
- whipping-boy which he counted clear gain, since he got both
- entertainment and needful information out of it.
- The third day of Tom Canty's kingship came and went much as the
- others had done, but there was a lifting of his cloud in one way- he
- felt less uncomfortable than at first; he was getting a little used to
- his circumstances and surroundings; his chains still galled, but not
- all the time; he found that the presence and homage of the great
- afflicted and embarrassed him less and less sharply with every hour
- that drifted over his head.
- But for one single dread, he could have seen the fourth day
- approach without serious distress- the dining in public; it was to
- begin that day. There were greater matters in the program- for on that
- day he would have to preside at a council which would take his views
- and commands concerning the policy to be pursued toward various
- foreign nations scattered far and near over the great globe; on that
- day, too, Hertford would be formally chosen to the grand office of
- Lord Protector; other things of note were appointed for that fourth
- day also, but to Tom they were all insignificant compared with the
- ordeal of dining all by himself with a multitude of curious eyes
- fastened upon him and a multitude of mouths whispering comments upon
- his performance- and upon his mistakes, if he should be so unlucky
- as to make any.
- Still, nothing could stop that fourth day, and so it came. It
- found poor Tom low-spirited and absent-minded, and this mood
- continued; he could not shake it off. The ordinary duties of the
- morning dragged upon his hands, and wearied him. Once more he felt the
- sense of captivity heavy upon him.
- Late in the forenoon he was in a large audience chamber,
- conversing with the Earl of Hertford and duly awaiting the striking of
- the hour appointed for a visit of ceremony from a considerable
- number of great officials and courtiers.
- After a little while Tom, who had wandered to a window and
- become interested in the life and movement of the great highway beyond
- the palace gates- and not idly interested, but longing with all his
- heart to take part in person in its stir and freedom- saw the van of a
- hooting and shouting mob of disorderly men, women, and children of the
- lowest and poorest degree approaching from up the road.
- 'I would I knew what 'tis about!' he exclaimed, with all a boy's
- curiosity in such happenings.
- 'Thou art the king!' solemnly responded the earl, with a
- reverence. 'Have I your grace's leave to act?'
- 'Oh, blithely, yes! Oh, gladly, yes!' exclaimed Tom, excitedly,
- adding to himself with a lively sense of satisfaction, 'In truth,
- being a king is not all dreariness- it hath its compensations and
- conveniences.'
- The earl called a page, and sent him to the captain of the guard
- with the order:
- 'Let the mob be halted, and inquiry made concerning, the
- occasion of its movement. By the king's command!'
- A few seconds later a long rank of the royal guards, cased in
- flashing steel, filed out at the gates and formed across the highway
- in front of the multitude. A messenger returned, to report that the
- crowd were following a man, a woman, and a young girl to execution for
- crimes committed against the peace and dignity of the realm.
- Death- and a violent death- for these poor unfortunates! The
- thought wrung Tom's heartstrings. The spirit of compassion took
- control of him, to the exclusion of all other considerations; he never
- thought of the offended laws, or of the grief or loss which these
- three criminals had inflicted upon their victims, he could think of
- nothing but the scaffold and the grisly fate hanging over the heads of
- the condemned. His concern made him even forget, for the moment,
- that he was but the false shadow of a king, not the substance; and
- before he knew it he had blurted out the command:
- 'Bring them here!'
- Then he blushed scarlet, and a sort of apology sprung to his lips;
- but observing that his order had wrought no sort of surprise in the
- earl or the waiting page, he suppressed the words he was about to
- utter. The page, in the most matter-of-course way, made a profound
- obeisance and retired backward out of the room to deliver the command.
- Tom experienced a glow of pride and a renewed sense of the
- compensating advantages of the kingly office. He said to himself,
- 'Truly it is like what I used to feel when I read the old priest's
- tales, and did imagine mine own self a prince, giving law and
- command to all, saying, " Do this, do that," while none durst offer
- let or hindrance to my will.'
- Now the doors swung open; one high-sounding title after another
- was announced, the personages owning them followed, and the place
- was quickly half filled with noble folk and finery. But Tom was hardly
- conscious of the presence of these people, so wrought up was he and so
- intensely absorbed in that other and more interesting matter. He
- seated himself, absently, in his chair of state, and turned his eyes
- upon the door with manifestations of impatient expectancy; seeing
- which, the company forbore to trouble him, and fell to chatting a
- mixture of public business and court gossip one with another.
- In a little while the measured tread of military men was heard
- approaching, and the culprits entered the presence in charge of an
- under-sheriff and escorted by a detail of the king's guard. The
- civil officer knelt before Tom, then stood aside; the three doomed
- persons knelt also, and remained so; the guard took position behind
- Tom's chair. Tom scanned the prisoners curiously. Something about
- the dress or appearance of the man had stirred a vague memory in
- him. 'Methinks I have seen this man ere now... but the when or the
- where fail me'- such was Tom's thought. Just then the man glanced
- quickly up, and quickly dropped his face again, not being able to
- endure the awful port of sovereignty; but the one full glimpse of
- the face, which Tom got, was sufficient. He said to himself: 'Now is
- the matter clear; this is the stranger that plucked Giles Witt out
- of the Thames, and saved his life that windy, bitter first day of
- the New Year- a brave, good deed- pity he hath been doing baser ones
- and got himself in this sad case... I have not forgot the day, neither
- the hour; by reason that an hour after, upon the stroke of eleven, I
- did get a hiding by the hand of Gammer Canty which was of so goodly
- and admired severity that all that went before or followed after it
- were but fondlings and caresses by comparison.'
- Tom now ordered that the woman and the girl be removed from the
- presence for a little time; then addressed himself to the
- under-sheriff, saying:
- 'Good sir, what is this man's offense?'
- The officer knelt, and answered:
- 'So please your majesty, he hath taken the life of a subject by
- poison.'
- Tom's compassion for the prisoner, and admiration of him as the
- daring rescuer of a drowning boy, experienced a most damaging shock.
- 'The thing was proven upon him?' he asked.
- 'Most clearly, sire.'
- Tom sighed, and said:
- 'Take him away- he hath earned his death. 'Tis a pity, for he
- was a brave heart- na- na, I mean he hath the look of it!'
- The prisoner clasped his hands together with sudden energy, and
- wrung them despairingly, at the same time appealing imploringly to the
- 'king' in broken and terrified phrases:
- 'Oh, my lord the king, an thou canst pity the lost, have pity upon
- me! I am innocent- neither hath that wherewith I am charged been
- more than but lamely proved- yet I speak not of that; the judgment
- is gone forth against me and may not suffer alteration; yet in mine
- extremity I beg a boon, for my doom is more than I can bear. A
- grace, a grace, my lord the king! in thy royal compassion grant my
- prayer- give commandment that I be hanged!'
- Tom was amazed. This was not the outcome he had looked for.
- 'Odds my life, a strange boon! Was it not the fate intended thee?'
- 'Oh, good my liege, not so! It is ordered that I be boiled alive!'
- The hideous surprise of these words almost made Tom spring from
- his chair. As soon as he could recover his wits he cried out:
- 'Have thy wish, poor soul! an thou had poisoned a hundred men thou
- shouldst not suffer so miserable a death.'
- The prisoner bowed his face to the ground and burst into
- passionate expressions of gratitude- ending with:
- 'If ever thou shouldst know misfortune- which God forbid!- may thy
- goodness to me this day be remembered and requited!'
- Tom turned to the Earl of Hertford, and said:
- 'My lord, is it believable that there was warrant for this man's
- ferocious doom?'
- 'It is the law, your grace- for poisoners. In Germany coiners be
- boiled to death in oil- not cast in of a sudden, but by a rope let
- down into the oil by degrees, and slowly; first the feet, then the
- legs, then-'
- 'Oh, prithee, no more, my lord, I cannot bear it!' cried Tom,
- covering his eyes with his hands to shut out the picture. 'I beseech
- your good lordship that order be taken to change this law- oh, let
- no more poor creatures be visited with its tortures.'
- The earl's face showed profound ratification, for he was a man
- of merciful and generous impulses- a thing not very common with his
- class in that fierce age.
- He said:
- 'These your grace's noble words have sealed its doom. History will
- remember it to the honor of your royal house.'
- The under-sheriff was about to remove his prisoner; Tom gave him a
- sign to wait; then he said:
- 'Good sir, I would look into this matter further. The man has said
- his deed was but lamely proved. Tell me what thou knowest.'
- 'If the king's grace please, it did appear upon the trial, that
- this man entered into a house in the hamlet of Islington where one lay
- sick- three witnesses say it was at ten of the clock in the morning
- and two say it was some minutes later- the sick man being alone at the
- time, and sleeping- and presently the man came forth again, and went
- his way. The sick man died within the hour, being torn with spasm
- and retchings.'
- 'Did any see the poison given? Was poison found?'
- 'Marry, no, my liege.'
- 'Then how doth one know there was poison given at all?'
- 'Please your majesty, the doctors testified that none die with
- such symptoms but by poison.'
- Weighty evidence, this- in that simple age. Tom recognized its
- formidable nature, and said:
- 'The doctor knoweth his trade- belike they were right. The
- matter hath an ill look for this poor man.'
- 'Yet was not this all, your majesty; there is more and worse. Many
- testified that a witch, since gone from the village, none know
- whither, did foretell, and speak it privately in their ears, that
- the sick man would die by poison- and more, that a stranger would give
- it- a stranger with brown hair and clothed in a worn and common
- garb; and surely this prisoner doth answer woundily to the bill.
- Please, your majesty, to give the circumstance that solemn weight
- which is its due, seeing it was foretold.'
- This was an argument of tremendous force, in that superstitious
- day. Tom felt that the thing was settled; if evidence was worth
- anything, this poor fellow's guilt was proved. Still he offered the
- prisoner a chance, saying:
- 'If thou canst say aught in thy behalf, speak.'
- 'Naught that will avail, my king. I am innocent, yet cannot I make
- it appear. I have no friends, else might I show that I was not in
- Islington that day; so also might I show that at that hour they name I
- was above a league away, seeing I was at Wapping Old Stairs; yea more,
- my king, for I could show, that while they say I was taking life, I
- was saving it. A drowning boy-'
- 'Peace! Sheriff, name the day the deed was done!'
- 'At ten in the morning, or some minutes later, the first day of
- the new year, most illustrious-'
- 'Let the prisoner go free- it is the king's will!'
- Another blush followed this unregal outburst, and he covered his
- indecorum as well as he could by adding:
- 'It enrageth me that a man should be hanged upon such idle,
- hare-brained evidence!'
- A low buzz of admiration swept through the assemblage. It was
- not admiration of the decree that had been delivered by Tom, for the
- propriety or expediency of pardoning a convicted poisoner was a
- thing which few there would have felt justified in either admitting or
- admiring- no, the admiration was for the intelligence and spirit which
- Tom had displayed. Some of the low-voiced remarks were to this effect:
- 'This is no mad king- he hath his wits sound.'
- 'How sanely he put his questions- how like his former natural self
- was this abrupt, imperious disposal of the matter!'
- 'God be thanked his infirmity is spent! This is no weakling, but a
- king. He hath borne himself like to his own father.'
- The air being filled with applause, Tom's ear necessarily caught a
- little of it. The effect which this had upon him was to put him
- greatly at his ease, and also to charge his system with very
- gratifying sensations.
- However, his juvenile curiosity soon rose superior to these
- pleasant thoughts and feelings; he was eager to know what sort of
- deadly mischief the woman and the little girl could have been about;
- so, by his command the two terrified and sobbing creatures were
- brought before him.
- 'What is it that these have done?' he inquired of the sheriff.
- 'Please your majesty, a black crime is charged upon them, and
- clearly proven; wherefore the judges have decreed, according to the
- law, that they be hanged. They sold themselves to the devil- such is
- their crime.'
- Tom shuddered. He had been taught to abhor people who did this
- wicked thing. Still, he was not going to deny himself the pleasure
- of feeding his curiosity, for all that; so he asked:
- 'Where was this done?- and when?'
- 'On a midnight, in December- in a ruined church, your majesty.'
- Tom shuddered again. 'Who was there present?'
- 'Only these two, your grace- and that other.'
- 'Have these confessed?'
- 'Nay, not so, sire- they do deny it.'
- 'Then, prithee, how was it known?'
- 'Certain witnesses did see them wending thither, good your
- majesty; this bred the suspicion, and dire effects have since
- confirmed and justified it. In particular, it is in evidence that
- through the wicked power so obtained, they did invoke and bring
- about a storm that wasted all the region round about. Above forty
- witnesses have proved the storm; and sooth one might have had a
- thousand, for all had reason to remember it, sith all had suffered
- by it.'
- 'Certes this is a serious matter.' Tom turned this dark piece of
- scoundrelism over in his mind awhile, then asked:
- 'Suffered the woman, also, by the storm?'
- Several old heads among the assemblage nodded their recognition of
- the wisdom of this question. The sheriff, however, saw nothing
- consequential in the inquiry; he answered, with simple directness.
- 'Indeed, she did, your majesty, and most righteously, as all aver.
- Her habitation was swept away, and herself and child left
- shelterless.'
- 'Methinks the power to do herself so ill a turn was dearly bought.
- She had been cheated, had she paid but a farthing for it; that she
- paid her soul, and her child's, argueth that she is mad; if she is mad
- she knoweth not what she doth, therefore sinneth not.'
- The elderly heads nodded recognition of Tom's wisdom once more,
- and one individual murmured, 'An the king be mad himself, according to
- report, then it is a madness of a sort that would improve the sanity
- of some I wot of, if by the gentle providence of God they could but
- catch it.'
- 'What age hath the child?' asked Tom.
- 'Nine years, please your majesty.'
- 'By the law of England may a child enter into covenant and sell
- itself, my lord?' asked Tom, turning to a learned judge.
- 'The law doth not permit a child to make or meddle in any
- weighty matter, good my liege, holding that its callow wit unfitteth
- it to cope with the riper wit and evil schemings of them that are
- its elders. The devil may buy a child, if he so choose, and the
- child agree thereto, but not an Englishman- in this latter case the
- contract would be null and void.'
- 'It seemeth a rude unchristian thing, and ill contrived, that
- English law denieth privileges to Englishmen, to waste them on the
- devil!' cried Tom, with honest heat.
- This novel view of the matter excited many smiles, and was
- stored away in many heads to be repeated about the court as evidence
- of Tom's originality as well as progress toward mental health.
- The elder culprit had ceased from sobbing, and was hanging upon
- Tom's words with an excited interest and a growing hope. Tom noticed
- this, and it strongly inclined his sympathies toward her in her
- perilous and unfriended situation. Presently he asked:
- 'How wrought they, to bring the storm?'
- 'By pulling off their stockings, sire.'
- This astonished Tom, and also fired his curiosity to fever heat.
- He said eagerly:
- 'It is wonderful! Hath it always this dread effect?'
- 'Always, my liege- at least if the woman desire it, and utter
- the needful words, either in her mind or with her tongue.'
- Tom turned to the woman, and said with impetuous zeal:
- 'Exert thy power- I would see a storm.'
- There was a sudden paling of cheeks in the superstitious
- assemblage, and a general, though unexpressed, desire to get out of
- the place- all of which was lost upon Tom, who was dead to
- everything but the proposed cataclysm. Seeing a puzzled and astonished
- look in the woman's face, he added, excitedly:
- 'Never fear- thou shalt be blameless. More- thou shalt go free-
- none shall touch thee. Exert thy power.'
- 'O, my lord the king, I have it not- I have been falsely accused.'
- 'Thy fears stay thee. Be of good heart, thou shalt suffer no harm.
- Make a storm- it mattereth not how small a one- I require naught great
- or harmful, but indeed prefer the opposite- do this and thy life is
- spared- thou shalt go out free, with thy child, bearing the king's
- pardon, and safe from hurt or malice from any in the realm.'
- The woman prostrated herself, and protested, with tears, that
- she had no power to do the miracle, else she would gladly win her
- child's life alone, and be content to lose her own, if by obedience to
- the king's command so precious a grace might be acquired.
- Tom urged- the woman still adhered to her declarations. Finally,
- he said:
- 'I think the woman hath said true. An my mother were in her
- place and gifted with the devil's functions, she had not stayed a
- moment to call her storms and lay the whole land in ruins, if the
- saving of my forfeit life were the price she got! It is argument
- that other mothers are made in like mold. Thou art free, good wife-
- thou and thy child- for I do think thee innocent. Now thou'st naught
- to fear, being pardoned- pull off thy stockings!- an thou canst make
- me a storm, thou shalt be rich!'
- The redeemed creature was loud in her gratitude, and proceeded
- to obey, while Tom looked on with eager expectancy, a little marred by
- apprehension; the courtiers at the same time manifesting decided
- discomfort and uneasiness. The woman stripped her own feet and her
- little girl's also, and plainly did her best to reward the king's
- generosity with an earthquake, but it was all a failure and a
- disappointment. Tom sighed and said:
- 'There, good soul, trouble thyself no further, thy power is
- departed out of thee. Go thy way in peace; and if it return to thee at
- any time, forget me not, but fetch me a storm.'*(13)
- CHAPTER XVI
- The State Dinner
-
- THE dinner-hour drew near- yet, strangely enough, the thought
- brought but slight discomfort to Tom, and hardly any terror. The
- morning's experiences had wonderfully built up his confidence; the
- poor little ash-cat was already more wonted to his strange garret,
- after four days' habit, than a mature person could have become in a
- full month. A child's facility in accommodating itself to
- circumstances was never more strikingly illustrated.
- Let us privileged ones hurry to the great banqueting-room and have
- a glance at matters there while Tom is being made ready for the
- imposing occasion. It is a spacious apartment, with gilded pillars and
- pilasters, and pictured walls and ceilings. At the door stand tall
- guards, as rigid as statues, dressed in rich and picturesque costumes,
- and bearing halberds. In a high gallery which runs all around the
- place is a band of musicians and a packed company of citizens of
- both sexes, in brilliant attire. In the center of the room, upon a
- raised platform, is Tom's table. Now let the ancient chronicler speak:
- 'A gentleman enters the room bearing a rod, and along with him
- another bearing a table-cloth, which, after they have both kneeled
- three times with the utmost veneration, he spreads upon the table, and
- after kneeling again they both retire; then come two others, one
- with the rod again, the other with a salt-cellar, a plate, and
- bread; when they have kneeled as the others had done, and placed
- what was brought upon the table, they too retire with the same
- ceremonies performed by the first; at last come two nobles richly
- clothed, one bearing a tasting-knife, who, after prostrating
- themselves in the most graceful manner, approach and rub the table
- with bread and salt, with as much awe as if the king had been
- present.'*(14)
- So end the solemn preliminaries. Now, far down the echoing
- corridors we hear a bugle-blast, and the indistinct cry, 'Place for
- the king! way for the king's most excellent majesty!' These sounds are
- momently repeated- they grow nearer and nearer- and presently,
- almost in our faces, the martial note peals and the cry rings out,
- 'Way for the king!' At this instant the shining pageant appears, and
- files in at the door, with a measured march. Let the chronicler
- speak again:
- 'First come Gentlemen, Barons, Earls, Knights of the Garter, all
- richly dressed and bareheaded; next comes the Chancellor, between two,
- one of which carries the royal scepter, the other the Sword of State
- in a red scabbard, studded with golden fleurs-de-lis, the point
- upwards; next comes the King himself- whom, upon his appearing, twelve
- trumpets and many drums salute with a great burst of welcome, whilst
- all in the galleries rise in their places, crying "God save the King!"
- After him come nobles attached to his person, and on his right and
- left march his guard of honor, his fifty Gentlemen Pensioners, with
- gilt battle-axes.'
- This was all fine and pleasant. Tom's pulse beat high and a glad
- light was in his eye. He bore himself right gracefully, and all the
- more so because he was not thinking of how he was doing it, his mind
- being charmed and occupied with the blithe sights and sounds about
- him- and besides, nobody can be very ungraceful in nicely fitting
- beautiful clothes after he has grown a little used to them- especially
- if he is for the moment unconscious of them. Tom remembered his
- instructions, and acknowledged his greeting with a slight
- inclination of his plumed head, and a courteous 'I thank ye, my good
- people.'
- He seated himself at table without removing his cap; and did it
- without the least embarrassment; for to eat with one's cap on was
- the one solitary royal custom upon which the kings and the Cantys
- met upon common ground, neither party having any advantage over the
- other in the matter of old familiarity with it. The pageant broke up
- and grouped itself picturesquely, and remained bareheaded.
- Now, to the sound of gay music, the Yeomen of the Guard entered-
- 'the tallest and mightiest men in England, they being selected in this
- regard'- but we will let the chronicler tell about it:
- 'The Yeomen of the Guard entered bareheaded, clothed in scarlet,
- with golden roses upon their backs; and these went and came,
- bringing in each turn a course of dishes, served in plate. These
- dishes were received by a gentleman in the same order they were
- brought, and placed upon the table, while the taster gave to each
- guard a mouthful to eat of the particular dish he had brought, for
- fear of any poison.'
- Tom made a good dinner, notwithstanding he was conscious that
- hundreds of eyes followed each morsel to his mouth and watched him eat
- it with an interest which could not have been more intense if it had
- been a deadly explosive and was expected to blow him up and scatter
- him all over the place. He was careful not to hurry, and equally
- careful not to do anything whatever for himself, but wait till the
- proper official knelt down and did it for him. He got through
- without a mistake- flawless and precious triumph.
- When the meal was over at last and he marched away in the midst of
- his bright pageant, with the happy noises in his ears of blaring
- bugles, rolling drums, and thundering acclamations, he felt that if he
- had seen the worst of dining in public, it was an ordeal which he
- would be glad to endure several times a day if by that means he
- could but buy himself free from some of the more formidable
- requirements of his royal office.
- CHAPTER XVII
- Foo-foo the First
-
- MILES Hendon hurried along toward the Southwark end of the bridge,
- keeping a sharp lookout for the persons he sought, and hoping and
- expecting to overtake them presently. He was disappointed in this,
- however. By asking questions, he was enabled to track them part of the
- way through Southwark; then all traces ceased, and he was perplexed as
- to how to proceed. Still, he continued his efforts as best he could
- during the rest of the day. Nightfall found him leg-weary, half
- famished, and his desire as far from accomplishment as ever; so he
- supped at the Tabard inn and went to bed, resolved to make an early
- start in the morning, and give the town an exhaustive search. As he
- lay thinking and planning, he presently began to reason thus: The
- boy would escape from the ruffian, his reputed father, if possible;
- would he go back to London and seek his former haunts? No, he would
- not do that, he would avoid recapture. What, then, would he do?
- Never having had a friend in the world, or a protector, until he met
- Miles Hendon, he would naturally try to find that friend again,
- provided the effort did not require him to go toward London and
- danger. He would strike for Hendon Hall, that is what he would do, for
- he knew Hendon was homeward bound, and there he might expect to find
- him. Yes, the case was plain to Hendon- he must lose no more time in
- Southwark, but move at once through Kent, toward Monk's Holm,
- searching the wood and inquiring as he went. Let us return to the
- vanished little king now.
- The ruffian, whom the waiter at the inn on the bridge saw 'about
- to join' the youth and the king, did not exactly join them, but fell
- in close behind them and followed their steps. He said nothing. His
- left arm was in a sling, and he wore a large green patch over his left
- eye; he limped slightly, and used an oaken staff as a support. The
- youth led the king a crooked course through Southwark, and by and by
- struck into the highroad beyond. The king was irritated now, and
- said he would stop here- it was Hendon's place to come to him, not his
- to go to Hendon. He would not endure such insolence; he would stop
- where he was. The youth said:
- 'Thou'lt tarry here, and thy friend lying wounded in the wood
- yonder? So be it, then.'
- The king's manner changed at once. He cried out:
- 'Wounded? And who hath dared to do it? But that is apart; lead on,
- lead on! Faster, sirrah! art shod with lead? Wounded, is he? Now
- though the doer of it be a duke's son, he shall rue it!'
- It was some distance to the wood, but the space was speedily
- traversed. The youth looked about him, discovered a bough sticking
- in the ground, with a small bit of rag tied to it, then led the way
- into the forest, watching for similar boughs and finding them at
- intervals; they were evidently guides to the point he was aiming at.
- By and by an open place was reached, where were the charred remains of
- a farmhouse, and near them a barn which was falling to ruin and decay.
- There was no sign of life anywhere, and utter silence prevailed. The
- youth entered the barn, the king following eagerly upon his heels.
- No one there! The king shot a surprised and suspicious glance at the
- youth, and asked:
- 'Where is he?'
- A mocking laugh was his answer. The king was in a rage in a
- moment; he seized a billet of wood and was in the act of charging upon
- the youth when another mocking laugh fell upon his ear. It was from
- the lame ruffian, who had been following at a distance. The king
- turned and said angrily:
- 'Who art thou? What is thy business here?'
- 'Leave thy foolery,' said the man, 'and quiet thyself. My disguise
- is none so good that thou canst pretend thou knowest not thy father
- through it.'
- 'Thou art not my father. I know thee not. I am the king. If thou
- hast hid my servant, find him for me, or thou shalt sup sorrow for
- what thou hast done.'
- John Canty replied, in a stern and measured voice:
- 'It is plain thou art mad, and I am loath to punish thee; but if
- thou provoke me, I must. Thy prating doth no harm here, where there
- are no ears that need to mind thy follies, yet is it well to
- practise thy tongue to wary speech, that it may do no hurt when our
- quarters change. I have done a murder, and may not tarry at home-
- neither shalt thou, seeing I need thy service. My name is changed, for
- wise reasons; it is Hobbs- John Hobbs; thine is Jack- charge thy
- memory accordingly. Now, then, speak. Where is thy mother? Where are
- thy sisters? They came not to the place appointed- knowest thou
- whither they went?'
- The king answered, sullenly:
- 'Trouble me not with these riddles. My mother is dead; my
- sisters are in the palace.'
- The youth near by burst into a derisive laugh, and the king
- would have assaulted him, but Canty- or Hobbs, as he now called
- himself- prevented him, and said:
- 'Peace, Hugo, vex him not; his mind is astray, and thy ways fret
- him. Sit thee down, Jack, and quiet thyself; thou shalt have a
- morsel to eat, anon.'
- Hobbs and Hugo fell to talking together, in low voices, and the
- king removed himself as far as he could from their disagreeable
- company. He withdrew into the twilight of the farther end of the barn,
- where he found the earthen floor bedded a foot deep with straw. He lay
- down here, drew straw over himself in lieu of blankets, and was soon
- absorbed in thinking. He had many griefs, but the minor ones were
- swept almost into forgetfulness by the supreme one, the loss of his
- father. To the rest of the world the name of Henry VIII brought a
- shiver, and suggested an ogre whose nostrils breathed destruction
- and whose hand dealt scourgings and death; but to this boy the name
- brought only sensations of pleasure, the figure it invoked wore a
- countenance that was all gentleness and affection. He called to mind a
- long succession of loving passages between his father and himself, and
- dwelt fondly upon them, his unstinted tears attesting how deep and
- real was the grief that possessed his heart. As the afternoon wasted
- away, the lad, wearied with his troubles, sunk gradually into a
- tranquil and healing slumber.
- After a considerable time- he could not tell how long- his
- senses struggled to a half-consciousness, and as he lay with closed
- eyes vaguely wondering where he was and what had been happening, he
- noted a murmurous sound, the sullen beating of rain upon the roof. A
- snug sense of comfort stole over him, which was rudely broken, the
- next moment, by a chorus of piping cackles and coarse laughter. It
- startled him disagreeably, and he unmuffled his head to see whence
- this interruption proceeded. A grim and unsightly picture met his eye.
- A bright fire was burning in the middle of the floor, at the other end
- of the barn; and around it, and lit weirdly up by the red glare,
- lolled and sprawled the motliest company of tattered gutter-scum and
- ruffians, of both sexes, he had ever read or dreamed of. There were
- huge, stalwart men, brown with exposure, long-haired, and clothed in
- fantastic rags; there were middle-sized youths, of truculent
- countenance, and similarly clad; there were blind medicants, with
- patched or bandaged eyes; crippled ones, with wooden legs and
- crutches; there was a villain-looking peddler with his pack; a
- knife-grinder, a tinker, and a barber-surgeon, with the implements
- of their trades; some of the females were hardly grown girls, some
- were at prime, some were old and wrinkled hags, and all were loud,
- brazen, foul-mouthed; and all soiled and slatternly; there were
- three sore-faced babies; there were a couple of starveling curs,
- with strings around their necks, whose office was to lead the blind.
- The night was come, the gang had just finished feasting, an orgy
- was beginning, the can of liquor was passing from mouth to mouth. A
- general cry broke forth:
- 'A song! a song from the Bat and Dick Dot-and-go-One!'
- One of the blind men got up, and made ready by casting aside the
- patches that sheltered his excellent eyes, and the pathetic placard
- which recited the cause of his calamity. Dot-and-go-One
- disencumbered himself of his timber leg and took his place, upon sound
- and healthy limbs, beside his fellow-rascal; then they roared out a
- rollicking ditty, and were reinforced by the whole crew, at the end of
- each stanza, in a rousing chorus. By the time the last stanza was
- reached, the half-drunken enthusiasm had risen to such a pitch that
- everybody joined in and sang it clear through from the beginning,
- producing a volume of villainous sound that made the rafters quake.
- These were the inspiring words:
-
- 'Bien Darkmans then, Bouse Mort and Ken,
- The bien Coves bings awast,
- On Chates to trine by Rome Coves dine
- For his long lib at last.
- Bing'd out bien Morts and toure, and toure,
- Bing out of the Rome vile bine,
- And toure the Cove that cloy'd your duds,
- Upon upon the Chates to trine.'*(15)
-
- Conversation followed; not in the thieves' dialect of the song,
- for that was only used in talk when unfriendly ears might be
- listening. In the course of it it appeared that 'John Hobbs' was not
- altogether a new recruit, but had trained in the gang at some former
- time. His later history was called for, and when he said he had
- 'accidentally' killed a man, considerable satisfaction was
- expressed; when he added that the man was a priest, he was roundly
- applauded, and had to take a drink with everybody. Old acquaintances
- welcomed him joyously, and new ones were proud to shake him by the
- hand. He was asked why he had 'tarried away so many months.' He
- answered:
- 'London is better than the country, and safer these late years,
- the laws be so bitter and so diligently enforced. An I had not had
- that accident, I had stayed there. I had resolved to stay, and
- nevermore venture countrywards- but the accident had ended that.'
- He inquired how many persons the gang numbered now. The 'Ruffler,'
- or chief, answered:
- 'Five and twenty sturdy budges, bulks, files, clapperdogeons and
- maunders, counting the dells and doxies and other morts.*(16) Most are
- here, the rest are wandering eastward, along the winter lay. We follow
- at dawn.'
- 'I do not see the Wen among the honest folk about me. Where may he
- be?'
- 'Poor lad, his diet is brimstone now, and over hot for a
- delicate taste. He was killed in a brawl, somewhere about midsummer.'
- 'I sorrow to hear that; the Wen was a capable man, and brave.'
- 'That was he, truly. Black Bess, his dell, is of us yet, but
- absent on the eastward tramp; a fine lass, of nice ways and orderly
- conduct, none ever seeing her drunk above four days in the seven.'
- 'She was ever strict- I remember it well- a goodly wench and
- worthy all commendation. Her mother was more free and less particular;
- a troublesome and ugly-tempered beldame, but furnished with a wit
- above the common.'
- 'We lost her through it. Her gift of palmistry and other sorts
- of fortune-telling begot for her at last a witch's name and fame.
- The law roasted her to death at a slow fire. It did touch me to a sort
- of tenderness to see the gallant way she met her lot- cursing and
- reviling all the crowd that gaped and gazed around her, whilst the
- flames licked upward toward her face and catched her thin locks and
- crackled about her old gray head- cursing them, said I?- cursing them!
- why an thou shouldst live a thousand years thou'dst never hear so
- masterful a cursing. Alack, her art died with her. There be base and
- weakling imitations left, but no true blasphemy.'
- The Ruffler sighed; the listeners sighed in sympathy; a general
- depression fell upon the company for a moment, for even hardened
- outcasts like these are not wholly dead to sentiment, but are able
- to feel a fleeting sense of loss and affliction at wide intervals
- and under peculiarly favoring circumstances- as in cases like to this,
- for instance, when genius and culture depart and leave no heir.
- However, a deep drink all round soon restored the spirits of the
- mourners.
- 'Have any other of our friends fared hardly?' asked Hobbs.
- 'Some- yes. Particularly new-comers- such as small husbandmen
- turned shiftless and hungry upon the world because their farms were
- taken from them to be changed to sheep-ranges. They begged, and were
- whipped at the cart's tail, naked from the girdle up, till the blood
- ran; then set in the stocks to be pelted; they begged again, were
- whipped again, and deprived of an ear; they begged a third time-
- poor devils, what else could they do?- and were branded on the cheek
- with a red-hot iron, then sold for slaves; they ran away, were
- hunted down, and hanged. 'Tis a brief tale, and quickly told. Others
- of us have fared less hardly. Stand forth, Yokel, Burns, and Hodge-
- show your adornments!'
- These stood up and stripped away some of their rags, exposing
- their backs, crisscrossed with ropy old welts left by the lash; one
- turned up his hair and showed the place where a left ear had once
- been; another showed a brand upon his shoulder- the letter V and a
- mutilated ear; the third said:
- 'I am Yokel, once a farmer and prosperous, with loving wife and
- kids- now am I somewhat different in estate and calling; and the
- wife and kids are gone; mayhap they are in heaven, mayhap in- in the
- other place- but the kindly God be thanked, they bide no more in
- England! My good old blameless mother strove to earn bread by
- nursing the sick; one of these died, the doctors knew not how, so my
- mother was burned for a witch, whilst my babes looked on and wailed.
- English law!- up, all with your cups!- now all together and with a
- cheer!- drink to the merciful English law that delivered her from
- the English hell! Thank you, mates, one and all. I begged, from
- house to house- I and the wife- bearing with us the hungry kids- but
- it was a crime to be hungry in England- so they stripped us and lashed
- us through three towns. Drink ye all again to the merciful English
- law!- for its lash drank deep of my Mary's blood and its blessed
- deliverance came quick. She lies there, in the potter's field, safe
- from all harms. And the kids- well, whilst the law lashed me from town
- to town, they starved. Drink lads- only a drop- a drop to the poor
- kids, that never did any creature harm. I begged again- begged for a
- crust, and got the stocks and lost an ear- see, here bides the
- stump; I begged again, and here is the stump of the other to keep me
- minded of it. And still I begged again, and was sold for a slave- here
- on my cheek under this stain, if I washed it off, ye might see the red
- S the branding iron left there! A SLAVE! Do ye understand that word!
- An English SLAVE!- that is he that stands before ye. I have run from
- my master, and when I am found- the heavy curse of heaven fall on
- the law of the land that hath commanded it!- I shall hang!'*(17)
- A ringing voice came through the murky air:
- 'Thou shalt not!- and this day the end of that law is come!'
- All turned, and saw the fantastic figure of the little king
- approaching hurriedly; as it emerged into the light and was clearly
- revealed, a general explosion of inquiries broke out:
- 'Who is it ? What is it? Who art thou, manikin?'
- The boy stood unconfused in the midst of all those surprised and
- questioning eyes, and answered with princely dignity:
- 'I am Edward, king of England.'
- A wild burst of laughter followed, partly of derision and partly
- of delight in the excellence of the joke. The king was stung. He
- said sharply:
- 'Ye mannerless vagrants, is this your recognition of the royal
- boon I have promised?'
- He said more, with angry voice and excited gesture, but it was
- lost in a whirlwind of laughter and mocking exclamations. 'John Hobbs'
- made several attempts to make himself heard above the din, and at last
- succeeded- saying:
- 'Mates, he is my son, a dreamer, a fool, and stark mad- mind him
- not- he thinketh he is the king.'
- 'I am the king,' said Edward, turning toward him, 'as thou shalt
- know to thy cost, in good time. Thou hast confessed a murder- thou
- shalt swing for it.'
- 'Thou'lt betray me!- thou? An I get my hands upon thee-'
- 'Tut-tut!' said the burly Ruffler, interposing in time to save the
- king, and emphasizing this service by knocking Hobbs down with his
- fist, 'hast respect for neither kings nor Rufflers? An thou insult
- my presence so again, I'll hang thee up myself.' Then he said to his
- majesty, 'Thou must make no threats against thy mates, lad; and thou
- must guard thy tongue from saying evil of them elsewhere. Be king,
- if it please thy mad humor, but be not harmful in it. Sink the title
- thou hast uttered- 'tis treason; we be bad men, in some few trifling
- ways, but none among us is so base as to be traitor to his king; we be
- loving and loyal hearts, in that regard. Note if I speak truth.
- Now-all together: "Long live Edward, King of England!"'
- 'LONG LIVE EDWARD, KING OF ENGLAND!'
- The response came with such a thunder-gust from the motley crew
- that the crazy building vibrated to the sound. The little king's
- face lighted with pleasure for an instant, and he slightly inclined
- his head and said with grave simplicity:
- 'I thank you, my good people.'
- This unexpected result threw the company into convulsions of
- merriment. When something like quiet was presently come again, the
- Ruffler said, firmly, but with an accent of good nature:
- 'Drop it, boy, 'tis not wise, nor well. Humor thy fancy, if thou
- must, but choose some other title.'
- A tinker shrieked out a suggestion:
- 'Foo-foo the First, king of the Mooncalves!'
- The title 'took' at once, every throat responded, and a roaring
- shout sent up, of:
- 'Long live Foo-foo the First, king of the Mooncalves!' followed by
- hootings, cat-calls, and peals of laughter.
- 'Hale him forth, and crown him!'
- 'Robe him!'
- 'Scepter him!'
- 'Throne him!'
- These and twenty other cries broke out at once; and almost
- before the poor little victim could draw a breath he was crowned
- with a tin basin, robed in a tattered blanket, throned upon a
- barrel, and sceptered with tinker's soldering-iron. Then all flung
- themselves upon their knees about him and sent up a chorus of ironical
- wailings, and mocking supplications, while they swabbed their eyes
- with their soiled and ragged sleeves and aprons:
- 'Be gracious to us, O sweet king!'
- 'Trample not upon thy beseeching worms, O noble majesty!'
- 'Pity thy slaves, and comfort them with a royal kick!'
- 'Cheer us and warm us with thy gracious rays, O flaming sun of
- sovereignty!'
- 'Sanctify the ground with the touch of thy foot, that we may eat
- the dirt and be ennobled!'
- 'Deign to spit upon us, O sire, that our children's children may
- tell of thy princely condescension, and be proud and happy forever!'
- But the humorous tinker made the 'hit' of the evening and
- carried off the honors. Kneeling, he pretended to kiss the king's
- foot, and was indignantly spurned; whereupon he went about begging for
- a rag to paste over the place upon his face which had been touched
- by the foot, saying it must be preserved from contact with the
- vulgar air, and that he should make his fortune by going on the
- highway and exposing it to view at the rate of a hundred shillings a
- sight. He made himself so killingly funny that he was the envy and
- admiration of the whole mangy rabble.
- Tears of shame and indignation stood in the little monarch's eyes;
- and the thought in his heart was, 'Had I offered them a deep wrong
- they could not be more cruel- yet have I proffered naught but to do
- them a kindness- and it is thus they use me for it!'
- CHAPTER XVIII
- The Prince with the Tramps
-
- THE troop of vagabonds turned out at early dawn, and set forward
- on their march. There was a lowering sky overhead, sloppy ground under
- foot, and a winter chill in the air. All gaiety was gone from the
- company; some were sullen and silent, some were irritable and
- petulant, none were gentle-humored, all were thirsty.
- The Ruffler put 'Jack' in Hugo's charge, with some brief
- instructions, and commanded John Canty to keep away from him and let
- him alone; he also warned Hugo not to be too rough with the lad.
- After a while the weather grew milder, and the clouds lifted
- somewhat. The troop ceased to shiver, and their spirits began to
- improve. They grew more and more cheerful, and finally began to
- chaff each other and insult passengers along the highway. This
- showed that they were awaking to an appreciation of life and its
- joys once more. The dread in which their sort was held was apparent in
- the fact that everybody gave them the road, and took their ribald
- insolences meekly, without venturing to talk back. They snatched linen
- from the hedges, occasionally, in full view of the owners, who made no
- protest, but only seemed grateful that they did not take the hedges,
- too.
- By and by they invaded a small farmhouse and made themselves at
- home while the trembling farmer and his people swept the larder
- clean to furnish a breakfast for them. They chucked the housewife
- and her daughters under the chin while receiving the food from their
- hands, and made coarse jests about them, accompanied with insulting
- epithets and bursts of horse-laughter. They threw bones and vegetables
- at the farmer and his sons, kept them dodging all the time, and
- applauded uproariously when a good hit was made. They ended by
- buttering the head of one of the daughters who resented some of
- their familiarities. When they took their leave they threatened to
- come back and burn the house over the heads of the family if any
- report of their doings got to the ears of the authorities.
- About noon, after a long and weary tramp, the gang came to a
- halt behind a hedge on the outskirts of a considerable village. An
- hour was allowed for rest, then the crew scattered themselves abroad
- to enter the village at different points to ply their various
- trades. 'Jack' was sent with Hugo. They wandered hither and thither
- for some time, Hugo watching for opportunities to do a stroke of
- business but finding none- so he finally said:
- 'I see naught to steal; it is a paltry place. Wherefore we will
- beg.'
- 'We, forsooth! Follow thy trade- it befits thee. But I will not
- beg.'
- 'Thou'lt not beg!' exclaimed Hugo, eying the king with surprise.
- 'Prithee, since when hast thou reformed?'
- 'What dost thou mean?'
- 'Mean? Hast thou not begged the streets of London all thy life?'
- 'I? Thou idiot!'
- 'Spare thy compliments- thy stock will last longer. Thy father
- says thou hast begged all thy days. Mayhap he lied. Peradventure you
- will even make so bold as to say he lied,' scoffed Hugo.
- 'Him you call my father? Yes, he lied.'
- 'Come, play not thy merry game of madman so far, mate; use it
- for thy amusement, not thy hurt. An I tell him this, he will scorch
- thee finely for it.'
- 'Save thyself the trouble. I will tell him.'
- 'I like thy spirit, I do in truth; but I do not admire thy
- judgment. Bone-rackings and bastings be plenty enow in this life,
- without going out of one's way to invite them. But a truce to these
- matters; I believe your father. I doubt not he can lie; I doubt not he
- doth lie, upon occasion, for the best of us do that; but there is no
- occasion here. A wise man does not waste so good a commodity as
- lying for naught. But come; sith it is thy humor to give over begging,
- wherewithal shall we busy ourselves? With robbing kitchens?'
- The king said, impatiently:
- 'Have done with this folly- you weary me!'
- Hugo replied, with temper:
- 'Now harkee, mate; you will not beg, you will not rob; so be it.
- But I will tell you what you will do. You will play decoy whilst I
- beg. Refuse, an you think you may venture!'
- The king was about to reply contemptuously, when Hugo said,
- interrupting:
- 'Peace! Here comes one with a kindly face. Now will I fall down in
- a fit. When the stranger runs to me, set you up a wail, and fall
- upon your knees, seeming to weep; then cry out as if all the devils of
- misery were in your belly, and say, "Oh, sir, it is my poor
- afflicted brother, and we be friendless; o' God's name cast through
- your merciful eyes one pitiful look upon a sick, forsaken, and most
- miserable wretch; bestow one little penny out of thy riches upon one
- smitten of God and ready to perish!"- and mind you, keep you on
- wailing, and abate not till we bilk him of his penny, else shall you
- rue it.'
- Then immediately Hugo began to moan, and groan, and roll his eyes,
- and reel and totter about; and when the stranger was close at hand,
- down he sprawled before him, with a shriek, and began to writhe and
- wallow in the dirt, in seeming agony.
- 'O dear, O dear!' cried the benevolent stranger. 'Oh, poor soul,
- poor soul, how he doth suffer! There- let me help thee up.'
- 'O, noble sir, forbear, and God love you for a princely gentleman-
- but it giveth me cruel pain to touch me when I am taken so. My brother
- there will tell your worship how I am racked with anguish when these
- fits be upon me. A penny, dear sir, a penny, to buy a little food;
- then leave me to my sorrows.'
- 'A penny! thou shalt have three, thou hapless creature'- and he
- fumbled in his pocket with nervous haste and got them out. 'There,
- poor lad, take them, and most welcome. Now come hither, my boy, and
- help me carry thy stricken brother to yon house, where-'
- 'I am not his brother,' said the king, interrupting.
- 'What! not his brother?'
- 'Oh, hear him!' groaned Hugo, then privately ground his teeth. 'He
- denies his own brother- and he with one foot in the grave!'
- 'Boy, thou art indeed hard of heart, if this is thy brother. For
- shame!- and he scarce able to move hand or foot. If he is not thy
- brother, who is he, then?'
- 'A beggar and a thief! He has got your money and has picked your
- pocket likewise. An thou wouldst do a healing miracle, lay thy staff
- over his shoulders and trust Providence for the rest.'
- But Hugo did not tarry for the miracle. In a moment he was up
- and off like the wind, the gentleman following after and raising the
- hue and cry lustily as he went. The king, breathing deep gratitude
- to Heaven for his own release, fled in the opposite direction and
- did not slacken his pace until he was out of harm's reach. He took the
- first road that offered, and soon put the village behind him. He
- hurried along, as briskly as he could, during several hours, keeping a
- nervous watch over his shoulder for pursuit; but his fears left him at
- last, and a grateful sense of security took their place. He recognized
- now that he was hungry; and also very tired. So he halted at a
- farmhouse; but when he was about to speak, he was cut short and driven
- rudely away. His clothes were against him.
- He wandered on, wounded and indignant, and was resolved to put
- himself in the way of light treatment no more. But hunger is pride's
- master; so as the evening drew near, he made an attempt at another
- farmhouse; but here he fared worse than before; for he was called hard
- names and was promised arrest as a vagrant except he moved on
- promptly.
- The night came on, chilly and overcast; and still the footsore
- monarch labored slowly on. He was obliged to keep moving, for every
- time he sat down to rest he was soon penetrated to the bone with the
- cold. All his sensations and experiences, as he moved through the
- solemn gloom and the empty vastness of the night, were new and strange
- to him. At intervals he heard voices approach, pass by, and fade
- into silence; and as he saw nothing more of the bodies they belonged
- to than a sort of formless drifting blur, there was something spectral
- and uncanny about it all that made him shudder. Occasionally he caught
- the twinkle of a light- always far away, apparently- almost in another
- world; if he heard the tinkle of a sheep's bell, it was vague,
- distant, indistinct; the muffled lowing of the herds floated to him on
- the night wind in vanishing cadences, a mournful sound; now and then
- came the complaining howl of a dog over viewless expanses of field and
- forest; all sounds were remote; they made the little king feel that
- all life and activity were far removed from him, and that he stood
- solitary, companionless, in the center of a measureless solitude.
- He stumbled along, through the gruesome fascinations of this new
- experience, startled occasionally by the soft rustling of the dry
- leaves overhead, so like human whispers they seemed to sound; and by
- and by he came suddenly upon the freckled light of a tin lantern
- near at hand. He stepped back into the shadows and waited. The lantern
- stood by the open door of a barn. The king waited some time- there was
- no sound, and nobody stirring. He got so cold, standing still, and the
- hospitable barn looked so enticing, that at last he resolved to risk
- everything and enter. He started swiftly and stealthily, and just as
- he was crossing the threshold he heard voices behind him. He darted
- behind a cask, within the barn, and stooped down. Two farm laborers
- came in, bringing the lantern with them, and fell to work, talking
- meanwhile. Whilst they moved about with the light, the king made
- good use of his eyes and took the bearings of what seemed to be a
- good-sized stall at the further end of the place, purposing to grope
- his way to it when he should be left to himself. He also noted the
- position of a pile of horse-blankets, midway of the route, with the
- intent to levy upon them for the service of the crown of England for
- one night.
- By and by the men finished and went away, fastening the door
- behind them and taking the lantern with them. The shivering king
- made for the blankets, with as good speed as the darkness would allow;
- gathered them up and then groped his way safely to the stall. Of two
- of the blankets he made a bed, then covered himself with the remaining
- two. He was a glad monarch now, though the blankets were old and thin,
- and not quite warm enough; and besides gave out a pungent horsy odor
- that was almost suffocatingly powerful.
- Although the king was hungry and chilly, he was also so tired
- and so drowsy that these latter influences soon began to get the
- advantage of the former, and he presently dozed off into a state of
- semi-consciousness. Then, just as he was on the point of losing
- himself wholly, he distinctly felt something touch him. He was broad
- awake in a moment, and gasping for breath. The cold horror of that
- mysterious touch in the dark almost made his heart stand still. He lay
- motionless, and listened, scarcely breathing. But nothing stirred, and
- there was no sound. He continued to listen, and wait, during what
- seemed a long time, but still nothing stirred, and there was no sound.
- So he began to drop into a drowse once more at last; and all at once
- he felt that mysterious touch again! It was a grisly thing, this light
- touch from this noiseless and invisible presence; it made the boy sick
- with ghostly fears. What should he do? That was the question; but he
- did not know how to answer it. Should he leave these reasonably
- comfortable quarters and fly from this inscrutable horror? But fly
- whither? He could not get out of the barn; and the idea of scurrying
- blindly hither and thither in the dark, within the captivity of the
- four walls, with this phantom gliding after him, and visiting him with
- that soft hideous touch upon cheek or shoulder at every turn, was
- intolerable. But to stay where he was, and endure this living death
- all night- was that better? No. What, then, was there left to do?
- Ah, there was but one course; he knew it well- he must put out his
- hand and find that thing!
- It was easy to think this; but it was hard to brace himself up
- to try it. Three times he stretched his hand a little way out into the
- dark gingerly; and snatched it suddenly back, with a gasp- not because
- it had encountered anything, but because he had felt so sure it was
- just going to. But the fourth time he groped a little further, and his
- hand lightly swept against something soft and warm. This petrified him
- nearly with fright- his mind was in such a state that he could imagine
- the thing to be nothing else than a corpse, newly dead and still warm.
- He thought he would rather die than touch it again. But he thought
- this false thought because he did not know the immortal strength of
- human curiosity. In no long time his hand was tremblingly groping
- again- against his judgment, and without his consent- but groping
- persistently on, just the same. It encountered a bunch of long hair;
- he shuddered, but followed up the hair and found what seemed to be a
- warm rope; followed up the rope and found an innocent calf; for the
- rope was not a rope at all, but the calf's tail.
- The king was cordially ashamed of himself for having gotten all
- that fright and misery out of so paltry a matter as a slumbering calf;
- but he need not have felt so about it, for it was not the calf that
- frightened him but a dreadful non-existent something which the calf
- stood for; and any other boy, in those old superstitous times, would
- have acted and suffered just as he had done.
- The king was not only delighted to find that the creature was only
- a calf, but delighted to have the calf's company; for he had been
- feeling so lonesome and friendless that the company and comradeship of
- even this humble animal was welcome. And he had been so buffeted, so
- rudely entreated by his own kind, that it was a real comfort to him to
- feel that he was at last in the society of a fellow-creature that
- had at least a soft heart and a gentle spirit, whatever loftier
- attributes might be lacking. So he resolved to waive rank and make
- friends with the calf.
- While stroking its sleek, warm back- for it lay near him and
- within easy reach- it occurred to him that this calf might be utilized
- in more ways than one. Whereupon he rearranged his bed, spreading it
- down close to the calf; then he cuddled himself up to the calf's back,
- drew the covers up over himself and his friend, and in a minute or two
- was as warm and comfortable as he had ever been in the downy couches
- of the regal palace of Westminster.
- Pleasant thoughts came at once; life took on a cheerfuler seeming.
- He was free of the bonds of servitude and crime, free of the
- companionship of base and brutal outlaws; he was warm, he was
- sheltered; in a word, he was happy. The night wind was rising; it
- swept by in fitful gusts that made the old barn quake and rattle, then
- its forces died down at intervals, and went moaning and wailing around
- corners and projections- but it was all music to the king, now that he
- was snug and comfortable; let it blow and rage, let it batter and
- bang, let it moan and wail, he minded it not, he only enjoyed it. He
- merely snuggled the closer to his friend, in a luxury of warm
- contentment, and drifted blissfully out of consciousness into a deep
- and dreamless sleep that was full of serenity and peace. The distant
- dogs howled, the melancholy kine complained; and the winds went on
- raging, whilst furious sheets of rain drove along the roof; but the
- majesty of England slept on undisturbed, and the calf did the same, it
- being a simple creature and not easily troubled by storms or
- embarrassed by sleeping with a king.
- CHAPTER XIX
- The Prince with the Peasants
-
- WHEN the king awoke in the early morning, he found that a wet
- but thoughtful rat had crept into the place during the night and
- made a cozy bed for itself in his bosom. Being disturbed now, it
- scampered away. The boy smiled, and said, 'Poor fool, why so
- fearful? I am as forlorn as thou. 'Twould be a shame in me to hurt the
- helpless, who am myself so helpless. Moreover, I owe you thanks for
- a good omen; for when a king has fallen so low that the very rats do
- make a bed of him, it surely meaneth that his fortunes be upon the
- turn, since it is plain he can no lower go.'
- He got up and stepped out of the stall, and just then he heard the
- sound of children's voices. The barn door opened and a couple of
- little girls came in. As soon as they saw him their talking and
- laughing ceased, and they stopped and stood still, gazing at him
- with strong curiosity; they presently began to whisper together,
- then they approached nearer, and stopped again to gaze and whisper. By
- and by they gathered courage and began to discuss him aloud. One said:
- 'He hath a comely face.'
- The other added:
- 'And pretty hair.'
- 'But is ill clothed enow.'
- 'And how starved he looketh.'
- They came still nearer, sidling shyly around and about him,
- examining him minutely from all points, as if he were some strange new
- kind of animal; but warily and watchfully the while, as if they half
- feared he might be a sort of animal that would bite, upon occasion.
- Finally they halted before him, holding each other's hands for
- protection, and took a good satisfying stare with their innocent eyes;
- then one of them plucked up all her courage and inquired with honest
- directness:
- 'Who art thou, boy?'
- 'I am the king,' was the grave answer.
- The children gave a little start, and their eyes spread themselves
- wide open and remained so during a speechless half-minute. Then
- curiosity broke the silence:
- 'The king? What king?'
- 'The king of England.'
- The children looked at each other- then at him- then at each other
- again- wonderingly, perplexedly- then one said:
- 'Didst hear him, Margery?- he saith he is the king. Can that be
- true?'
- 'How can it be else but true, Prissy? Would he say a lie? For look
- you, Prissy, an it were not true, it would be a lie. It surely would
- be. Now think on't. For all things that be not true, be lies- thou
- canst make naught else out of it.'
- It was a good, tight argument, without a leak in it anywhere;
- and it left Prissy's half-doubts not a leg to stand on. She considered
- a moment, then put the king upon his honor with the simple remark:
- 'If thou art truly the king, then I believe thee.'
- 'I am truly the king.'
- This settled the matter. His majesty's royalty was accepted
- without further question or discussion, and the two little girls began
- at once to inquire into how he came to be where he was, and how he
- came to be so unroyally clad, and whither he was bound, and all
- about his affairs. It was a mighty relief to him to pour out his
- troubles where they would not be scoffed at or doubted; so he told his
- tale with feeling, forgetting even his hunger for the time; and it was
- received with the deepest and tenderest sympathy by the gentle
- little maids. But when he got down to his latest experiences and
- they learned how long he had been without food, they cut him short and
- hurried him away to the farmhouse to find a breakfast for him.
- The king was cheerful and happy now, and said to himself, 'When
- I am come to mine own again, I will always honor little children,
- remembering how that these trusted me and believed in me in my time of
- trouble; whilst they that were older, and thought themselves wiser,
- mocked at me and held me for a liar.'
- The children's mother received the king kindly, and was full of
- pity; for his forlorn condition and apparently crazed intellect
- touched her womanly heart. She was a widow, and rather poor;
- consequently she had seen trouble enough to enable her to feel for the
- unfortunate. She imagined that the demented boy had wandered away from
- his friends or keepers; so she tried to find out whence he had come,
- in order that she might take measures to return him; but all her
- references to neighbouring towns and villages, and all her inquiries
- in the same line, went for nothing- the boy's face, and his answers,
- too, showed that the things she was talking of were not familiar to
- him. He spoke earnestly and simply about court matters; and broke
- down, more than once, when speaking of the late king 'his father'; but
- whenever the conversation changed to baser topics, he lost interest
- and became silent.
- The woman was mightily puzzled; but she did not give up. As she
- proceeded with her cooking, she set herself to contriving devices to
- surprise the boy into betraying his real secret. She talked about
- cattle- he showed no concern; then about sheep- the same result- so
- her guess that he had been a shepherd boy was an error; she talked
- about mills; and about weavers, tinkers, smiths, trades and
- tradesmen of all sorts; and about Bedlam, and jails, and charitable
- retreats; but no matter, she was baffled at all points. Not
- altogether, either; for she argued that she had narrowed the thing
- down to domestic service. Yes, she was sure she was on the right track
- now- he must have been a house-servant. So she led up to that. But the
- result was discouraging. The subject of sweeping appeared to weary
- him; fire-building failed to stir him; scrubbing and scouring awoke no
- enthusiasm. Then the goodwife touched, with a perishing hope, and
- rather as a matter of form, upon the subject of cooking. To her
- surprise, and her vast delight, the king's face lighted at once! Ah,
- she had hunted him down at last, she thought; and she was right proud,
- too, of the devious shrewdness and tact which had accomplished it.
- Her tired tongue got a chance to rest now; for the king's,
- inspired by gnawing hunger and the fragrant smells that came from
- the sputtering pots and pans, turned itself loose and delivered itself
- up to such an eloquent dissertation upon certain toothsome dishes,
- that within three minutes the woman said to herself, 'Of a truth I was
- right- he hath holpen in a kitchen!' Then he broadened his bill of
- fare, and discussed it with such appreciation and animation, that
- the goodwife said to herself, 'Good lack! how can he know so many
- dishes, and so fine ones withal? For these belong only upon the tables
- of the rich and great. Ah, now I see! ragged outcast as he is, he must
- have served in the palace before his reason went astray; yes, he
- must have helped in the very kitchen of the king himself! I will
- test him.'
- Full of eagerness to prove her sagacity, she told the king to mind
- the cooking a moment- hinting that he might manufacture and add a dish
- or two, if he chose- then she went out of the room and gave her
- children a sign to follow after. The king muttered:
- 'Another English king had a commission like to this, in a bygone
- time- it is nothing against my dignity to undertake an office which
- the great Alfred stooped to assume. But I will try to better serve
- my trust than he; for he let the cakes burn.'
- The intent was good, but the performance was not answerable to it;
- for this king, like the other one, soon fell into deep thinkings
- concerning his vast affairs, and the same calamity resulted- the
- cookery got burned. The woman returned in time to save the breakfast
- from entire destruction; and she promptly brought the king out of
- his dreams with a brisk and cordial tongue-lashing. Then, seeing how
- troubled he was over his violated trust, she softened at once and
- was all goodness and gentleness toward him.
- The boy made a hearty and satisfying meal, and was greatly
- refreshed and gladdened by it. It was a meal which was distinguished
- by this curious feature, that rank was waived on both sides; yet
- neither recipient of the favor was aware that it had been extended.
- The goodwife had intended to feed this young tramp with broken
- victuals in a corner, like any other tramp, or like a dog; but she was
- so remorseful for the scolding she had given him, that she did what
- she could to atone for it by allowing him to sit at the family table
- and eat with his betters, on ostensible terms of equality with them;
- and the king, on his side, was so remorseful for having broken his
- trust, after the family had been so kind to him, that he forced
- himself to atone for it by humbling himself to the family level,
- instead of requiring the woman and her children to stand and wait upon
- him while he occupied their table in the solitary state due his
- birth and dignity. It does us all good to unbend sometimes. This
- good woman was made happy all the day long by the applauses she got
- out of herself for her magnanimous condescension to a tramp; and the
- king was just as self-complacent over his gracious humility toward a
- humble peasant woman.
- When breakfast was over, the housewife told the king to wash up
- the dishes. This command was a staggerer for a moment, and the king
- came near rebelling; but then he said to himself, 'Alfred the Great
- watched the cakes; doubtless he would have washed the dishes, too-
- therefore will I essay it.'
- He made a sufficiently poor job of it; and to his surprise, too,
- for the cleaning of wooden spoons and trenchers had seemed an easy
- thing to do. It was a tedious and troublesome piece of work, but he
- finished it at last. He was becoming impatient to get away on his
- journey now; however he was not to lose this thrifty dame's society so
- easily. She furnished him some little odds and ends of employment,
- which he got through with after a fair fashion and with some credit.
- Then she set him and the little girls to paring some winter apples;
- but he was so awkward at this service that she retired him from it and
- gave him a butcher-knife to grind. Afterward she kept him carding wool
- until he began to think he had laid the good King Alfred about far
- enough in the shade for the present, in the matter of showy menial
- heroisms that would read picturesquely in story-books and histories,
- and so he was half minded to resign. And when, just after the
- noonday dinner, the goodwife gave him a basket of kittens to drown, he
- did resign. At least he was just going to resign- for he felt that
- he must draw the line somewhere, and it seemed to him that to draw
- it at kitten-drowning was about the right thing- when there was an
- interruption. The interruption was John Canty- with a peddler's pack
- on his back- and Hugo!
- The king discovered these rascals approaching the front gate
- before they had had a chance to see him; so he said nothing about
- drawing the line, but took up his basket of kittens and stepped
- quietly out the back way, without a word. He left the creatures in
- an outhouse, and hurried on into a narrow lane at the rear.
- CHAPTER XX
- The Prince and the Hermit
-
- THE high hedge hid him from the house now; and so, under the
- impulse of a deadly fright, he let out all his forces and sped
- toward a wood in the distance. He never looked back until he had
- almost gained the shelter of the forest; then he turned and descried
- two figures in the distance. That was sufficient; he did not wait to
- scan them critically, but hurried on, and never abated his pace till
- he was far within the twilight depths of the wood. Then he stopped;
- being persuaded that he was now tolerably safe. He listened
- intently, but the stillness was profound and solemn- awful, even,
- and depressing to the spirits. At wide intervals his straining ear did
- detect sounds, but they were so remote, and hollow, and mysterious,
- that they seemed not to be real sounds, but only the moaning and
- complaining ghosts of departed ones. So the sounds were yet more
- dreary than the silence which they interrupted.
- It was his purpose, in the beginning, to stay where he was, the
- rest of the day; but a chill soon invaded his perspiring body, and
- he was at last obliged to resume movement in order to get warm. He
- struck straight through the forest, hoping to pierce to a road
- presently, but he was disappointed in this. He traveled on and on; but
- the farther he went, the denser the wood became, apparently. The gloom
- began to thicken, by and by, and the king realized that the night
- was coming on. It made him shudder to think of spending it in such
- an uncanny place; so he tried to hurry faster, but he only made the
- less speed, for he could not now see well enough to choose his steps
- judiciously; consequently he kept tripping over roots and tangling
- himself in vines and briers.
- And how glad he was when at last he caught the glimmer of a light!
- He approached it warily, stopping often to look about him and
- listen. It came from an unglazed window-opening in a little hut. He
- heard a voice now, and felt a disposition to run and hide; but he
- changed his mind at once, for his voice was praying, evidently. He
- glided to the one window of the hut, raised himself on tiptoe, and
- stole a glance within. The room was small; its floor was the natural
- earth, beaten hard by use; in a corner was a bed of rushes and a
- ragged blanket or two; near it was a pail, a cup, a basin, and two
- or three pots and pans; there was a short bench and a three-legged
- stool; on the hearth the remains of a fagot fire were smoldering;
- before a shrine, which was lighted by a single candle, knelt an aged
- man, and on an old wooden box at his side lay an open book and a human
- skull. The man was of large, bony frame; his hair and whiskers were
- very long and snowy white; he was clothed in a robe of sheepskins
- which reached from his neck to his heels.
- 'A holy hermit!' said the king to himself; 'now am I indeed
- fortunate.'
- The hermit rose from his knees; the king knocked. A deep voice
- responded:
- 'Enter!- but leave sin behind, for the ground whereon thou shalt
- stand is holy!'
- The king entered, and paused. The hermit turned a pair of
- gleaming, unrestful eyes upon him, and said:
- 'Who art thou?'
- 'I am the king,' came the answer, with placid simplicity.
- 'Welcome, king!' cried the hermit, with enthusiasm. Then, bustling
- about with feverish activity, and constantly saying 'Welcome,
- welcome,' he arranged his bench, seated the king on it, by the hearth,
- threw some fagots on the fire, and finally fell to pacing the floor,
- with a nervous stride.
- 'Welcome! Many have sought sanctuary here, but they were not
- worthy, and were turned away. But a king who casts his crown away, and
- despises the vain splendors of his office, and clothes his body in
- rags, to devote his life to holiness and the mortification of the
- flesh- he is worthy, he is welcome!- here shall he abide all his
- days till death come.' The king hastened to interrupt and explain, but
- the hermit paid no attention to him- did not even hear him apparently,
- but went right on with his talk, with a raised voice and a growing
- energy. 'And thou shalt be at peace here. None shall find out thy
- refuge to disquiet thee with supplications to return to that empty and
- foolish life which God hath moved thee to abandon. Thou shalt pray
- here; thou shalt study the Book; thou shalt meditate upon the
- follies and delusions of this world, and upon the sublimities of the
- world to come; thou shalt feed upon crusts and herbs, and scourge
- thy body with whips daily, to the purifying of thy soul. Thou shalt
- wear a hair shirt next thy skin; thou shalt drink water only; and thou
- shalt be at peace; yes, wholly at peace; for whoso comes to seek
- thee shall go his way again baffled; he shall not find thee, he
- shall not molest thee.'
- The old man, still pacing back and forth, ceased to speak aloud,
- and began to mutter. The king seized this opportunity to state his
- case; and he did it with an eloquence inspired by uneasiness and
- apprehension. But the hermit went on muttering, and gave no heed.
- And still muttering, he approached the king and said, impressively:
- ''Sh! I will tell you a secret!' He bent down to impart it, but
- checked himself, and assumed a listening attitude. After a moment or
- two he went on tiptoe to the window-opening, put his head out and
- peered around in the gloaming, then came tiptoeing back again, put his
- face close down to the king's and whispered:
- 'I am an archangel!'
- The king started violently, and said to himself, 'Would God I were
- with the outlaws again; for lo, now am I the prisoner of a madman!'
- His apprehensions were heightened, and they showed plainly in his
- face. In a low, excited voice, the hermit continued:
- 'I see you feel my atmosphere! There's awe in your face! None
- may be in this atmosphere and not be thus affected; for it is the very
- atmosphere of heaven. I go thither and return, in the twinkling of
- an eye. I was made an archangel on this very spot, it is five years
- ago, by angels sent from heaven to confer that awful dignity. Their
- presence filled this place with an intolerable brightness. And they
- knelt to me, king! yes, they knelt to me! for I was greater than they.
- I have walked in the courts of heaven, and held speech with the
- patriarchs. Touch my hand- be not afraid- touch it. There- now thou
- hast touched a hand which has been clasped by Abraham, and Isaac,
- and Jacob! For I have walked in the golden courts, I have seen the
- Deity face to face!' He paused, to give this speech effect; then his
- face suddenly changed, and he started to his feet again, saying,
- with angry energy, 'Yes, I am an archangel; a mere archangel!- I
- that might have been pope! It is verily true. I was told it from
- heaven in a dream, twenty years ago; ah, yes, I was to be pope!- and I
- should have been pope, for Heaven had said it- but the king
- dissolved my religious house, and I, poor obscure unfriended monk, was
- cast homeless upon the world, robbed of my mighty destiny!' Here he
- began to mumble again, and beat his forehead in futile rage, with
- his fist; now and then articulating a venomous curse, and now and then
- a pathetic 'Wherefore I am naught but an archangel- I that should have
- been pope!'
- So he went on for an hour, while the poor little king sat and
- suffered. Then all at once the old man's frenzy departed, and he
- became all gentleness. His voice softened, he came down out of his
- clouds, and fell to prattling along so simply and so humanely, that he
- soon won the king's heart completely. The old devotee moved the boy
- nearer to the fire and made him comfortable; doctored his small
- bruises and abrasions with a deft and tender hand; and then set
- about preparing and cooking a supper- chatting pleasantly all the
- time, and occasionally stroking the lad's cheek or patting his head,
- in such a gently caressing way that in a little while all the fear and
- repulsion inspired by the archangel were changed to reverence and
- affection for the man.
- This happy state of things continued while the two ate the supper;
- then, after a prayer before the shrine, the hermit put the boy to bed,
- in a small adjoining room, tucking him in as snugly and lovingly as
- a mother might; and so, with a parting caress, left him and sat down
- by the fire, and began to poke the brands about in an absent and
- aimless way. Presently he paused; then tapped his forehead several
- times with his fingers, as if trying to recall some thought which
- had escaped from his mind. Apparently he was unsuccessful. Now he
- started quickly up, and entered his guest's room, and said:
- 'Thou art king?'
- 'Yes,' was the response, drowsily uttered.
- 'What king?'
- 'Of England.'
- 'Of England. Then Henry is gone!'
- 'Alack, it is so. I am his son.'
- A black frown settled down upon the hermit's face, and he clenched
- his bony hands with a vindictive energy. He stood a few moments,
- breathing fast and swallowing repeatedly, then said in a husky voice:
- 'Dost know it was he that turned us out into the world houseless
- and homeless?'
- There was no response. The old man bent down and scanned the boy's
- reposeful face and listened to his placid breathing. 'He sleeps-
- sleeps soundly'; and the frown vanished away and gave place to an
- expression of evil satisfaction. A smile flitted across the dreaming
- boy's features. The hermit muttered, 'So- his heart is happy'; and
- he turned away. He went stealthily about the place, seeking here and
- there for something; now and then halting to listen, now and then
- jerking his head around and casting a quick glance toward the bed; and
- always muttering, always mumbling to himself. At last he found what he
- seemed to want- a rusty old butcher-knife and a whetstone. Then he
- crept to his place by the fire, sat himself down, and began to whet
- the knife softly on the stone, still muttering, mumbling, ejaculating.
- The winds sighed around the lonely place, the mysterious voices of the
- night floated by out of the distances. The shining eyes of venturesome
- mice and rats peered out at the old man from cracks and coverts, but
- he went on with his work, rapt, absorbed, and noted none of these
- things.
- At long intervals he drew his thumb along the edge of his knife,
- and nodded his head with satisfaction. 'It grows sharper,' he said;
- 'yes, it grows sharper.'
- He took no note of the flight of time, but worked tranquilly on,
- entertaining himself with his thoughts, which broke out occasionally
- in articulate speech:
- 'His father wrought us evil, he destroyed us- and is gone down
- into the eternal fires! Yes, down into the eternal fires! He escaped
- us- but it was God's will, yes it was God's will, we must not
- repine. But he hath not escaped the fires! no, he hath not escaped the
- fires, the consuming, unpitying, remorseless fires- and they are
- everlasting!'
- And so he wrought; and still wrought; mumbling- chuckling a low
- rasping chuckle at times- and at times breaking again into words:
- 'It was his father that did it all. I am but an archangel- but for
- him, I should be pope!'
- The king stirred. The hermit sprang noiselessly to the bedside,
- and went down upon his knees, bending over the prostrate form with his
- knife uplifted. The boy stirred again; his eyes came open for an
- instant, but there was no speculation in them, they saw nothing; the
- next moment his tranquil breathing showed that his sleep was sound
- once more.
- The hermit watched and listened for a time, keeping his position
- and scarcely breathing; then he slowly lowered his arm, and
- presently crept away, saying:
- 'It is long past midnight- it is not best that he should cry
- out, lest by accident some one be passing.'
- He glided about his hovel, gathering a rag here, a thong there,
- and another one yonder; then he returned, and by careful and gentle
- handling he managed to tie the king's ankles together without waking
- him. Next he essayed to tie the wrists; he made several attempts to
- cross them, but the boy always drew one hand or the other away, just
- as the cord was ready to be applied; but at last, when the archangel
- was almost ready to despair, the boy crossed his hands himself, and
- the next moment they were bound. Now a bandage was passed under the
- sleeper's chin and brought up over his head and tied fast- and so
- softly, so gradually, and so deftly were the knots drawn together
- and compacted, that the boy slept peacefully through it all without
- stirring.
- CHAPTER XXI
- Hendon to the Rescue
-
- The old man glided away, stooping, stealthily, catlike, and
- brought the low bench. He seated himself upon it, half his body in the
- dim and flickering light, and the other half in shadow; and so, with
- his craving eyes bent upon the slumbering boy, he kept his patient
- vigil there, heedless of the drift of time, and softly whetted his
- knife, and mumbled and chuckled; and in aspect and attitude he
- resembled nothing so much as a grizzly, monstrous spider, gloating
- over some hapless insect that lay bound and helpless in his web.
- After a long while, the old man, who was still gazing- yet not
- seeing, his mind having settled into a dreamy abstraction- observed on
- a sudden that the boy's eyes were open- wide open and staring!-
- staring up in frozen horror at the knife. The smile of a gratified
- devil crept over the old man's face, and he said, without changing his
- attitude or occupation:
- 'Son of Henry the Eighth, hast thou prayed?'
- The boy struggled helplessly in his bonds; and at the same time
- forced a smothered sound through his closed jaws, which the hermit
- chose to interpret as an affirmative answer to his question.
- 'Then pray again. Pray the prayer for the dying!'
- A shudder shook the boy's frame, and his face blenched. Then he
- struggled again to free himself- turning and twisting himself this way
- and that; tugging frantically, fiercely, desperately- but uselessly-
- to burst his fetters; and all the while the old ogre smiled down
- upon him, and nodded his head, and placidly whetted his knife,
- mumbling, from time to time, 'The moments are precious, they are few
- and precious- pray the prayer for the dying!'
- The boy uttered a despairing groan, and ceased from his struggles,
- panting. The tears came, then, and trickled, one after the other, down
- his face; but this piteous sight wrought no softening effect upon
- the savage old man.
- The dawn was coming now; the hermit observed it, and spoke up
- sharply, with a touch of nervous apprehension in his voice:
- 'I may not indulge this ecstasy longer! The night is already gone.
- It seems but a moment- only a moment; would it had endured a year!
- Seed of the Church's spoiler, close thy perishing eyes, an thou
- fearest to look upon...'
- The rest was lost in inarticulate mutterings. The old man sank
- upon his knees, his knife in his hand, and bent himself over the
- moaning boy-
- Hark! There was a sound of voices near the cabin- the knife
- dropped from the hermit's hand; he cast a sheepskin over the boy and
- started up, trembling. The sounds increased, and presently the
- voices became rough and angry; then came blows, and cries for help;
- then a clatter of swift footsteps retreating. Immediately came a
- succession of thundering knocks upon the cabin door, followed by:
- 'Hullo-o-o! Open! And despatch, in the name of all the devils!'
- Oh, this was the blessedest sound that had ever made music in
- the king's ears; for it was Miles Hendon's voice!
- The hermit, grinding his teeth in impotent rage, moved swiftly out
- of the bedchamber, closing the door behind him; and straightway the
- king heard a talk, to this effect, proceeding from the 'chapel':
- 'Homage and greeting, reverend sir! Where is the boy- my boy?'
- 'What boy, friend?'
- 'What boy! Lie me no lies, sir priest, play me no deceptions! I am
- not in the humor for it. Near to this place I caught the scoundrels
- who I judged did steal him from me, and I made them confess; they said
- he was at large again, and they had tracked him to your door. They
- showed me his very footprints. Now palter no more; for look you,
- holy sir, an thou produce him not- Where is the boy?'
- 'Oh, good sir, peradventure you mean the ragged regal vagrant that
- tarried here the night. If such as you take interest in such as he,
- know, then, that I have sent him of an errand. He will be back anon.'
- 'How soon? How soon? Come, waste not the time- cannot I overtake
- him? How soon will he be back?'
- 'Thou needst not stir; he will return quickly.'
- 'So be it then. I will try to wait. But stop!- you sent him of
- an errand?- you! Verily, this is a lie- he would not go. He would pull
- thy old beard, an thou didst offer him such an insolence. Thou hast
- lied, friend; thou hast surely lied! He would not go for thee nor
- for any man.'
- 'For any man- no; haply not. But I am not a man.'
- 'What! Now o' God's name what art thou, then?'
- 'It is a secret- mark thou reveal it not. I am an archangel!'
- There was a tremendous ejaculation from Miles Hendon- not
- altogether unprofane- followed by:
- 'This doth well and truly account for his complaisance! Right well
- I knew he would budge nor hand nor foot in the menial service of any
- mortal; but Lord, even a king must obey when an archangel gives the
- word o' command! Let me- 'sh! What noise was that?'
- All this while the king had been yonder, alternately quaking
- with terror and trembling with hope; and all the while, too, he had
- thrown all the strength he could into his anguished moanings,
- constantly expecting them to reach Hendon's ear, but always realizing,
- with bitterness, that they failed, or at least made no impression.
- So this last remark of his servant came as comes a reviving breath
- from fresh fields to the dying; and he exerted himself once more,
- and with all his energy, just as the hermit was saying:
- 'Noise? I heard only the wind.'
- 'Mayhap it was. Yes, doubtless that was it. I have been hearing it
- faintly all the- there it is again! It is not the wind! What an odd
- sound! Come, we will hunt it out!'
- Now, the king's joy was nearly insupportable. His tired lungs
- did their utmost- and hopefully, too- but the sealed jaws and the
- muffling sheepskin sadly crippled the effort. Then the poor fellow's
- heart sank, to hear the hermit say:
- 'Ah, it came from without- I think from the copse yonder. Come,
- I will lead the way.'
- The king heard the two pass out talking; heard their footsteps die
- quickly away- then he was alone with a boding, brooding, awful
- silence.
- It seemed an age till he heard the steps and voices approaching
- again- and this time he heard an added sound- the trampling of
- hoofs, apparently. Then he heard Hendon say:
- 'I will not wait longer. I cannot wait longer. He has lost his way
- in this thick wood. Which direction took he? Quick- point it out to
- me.'
- 'He- but wait; I will go with thee.'
- 'Good- good! Why, truly thou art better than thy looks. Marry, I
- do think there's not another archangel with so right a heart as thine.
- Wilt ride? Wilt take the wee donkey that's for my boy, or wilt thou
- fork thy holy legs over this ill-conditioned slave of a mule that I
- have provided for myself?- and had been cheated in, too, had he cost
- but the indifferent sum of a month's usury on a brass farthing let
- to a tinker out of work.'
- 'No- ride thy mule, and lead thine ass; I am surer on mine own
- feet, and will walk.'
- 'Then, prithee, mind the little beast for me while I take my
- life in my hands and make what success I may toward mounting the big
- one.'
- Then followed a confusion of kicks, cuffs, tramplings and
- plungings, accompanied by a thunderous intermingling of volleyed
- curses, and finally a bitter apostrophe to the mule, which must have
- broken its spirit, for hostilities seemed to cease from that moment.
- With unutterable misery the fettered little king heard the
- voices and footsteps fade away and die out. All hope forsook him now
- for the moment, and a dull despair settled down upon his heart. 'My
- only friend is deceived and got rid of,' he said; 'the hermit will
- return and-' He finished with a gasp; and at once fell to struggling
- so frantically with his bonds again, that he shook off the
- smothering sheepskin.
- And now he heard the door open! The sound chilled him to the
- marrow- already he seemed to feel the knife at his throat. Horror made
- him close his eyes; horror made him open them again- and before him
- stood John Canty and Hugo!
- He would have said 'Thank God!' if his jaws had been free.
- A moment or two later his limbs were at liberty, and his
- captors, each gripping him by an arm, were hurrying him with all speed
- through the forest.
- CHAPTER XXII
- A Victim of Treachery
-
- ONCE more 'King Foo-foo the First' was roving with the tramps
- and outlaws, a butt for their coarse jests and dull-witted railleries,
- and sometimes the victim of small spitefulnesses at the hands of Canty
- and Hugo when the Ruffler's back was turned. None but Canty and Hugo
- really disliked him. Some of the others liked him, and all admired his
- pluck and spirit. During two or three days, Hugo, in whose ward and
- charge the king was, did what he covertly could to make the boy
- uncomfortable; and at night, during the customary orgies, he amused
- the company by putting small indignities upon him- always as if by
- accident. Twice he stepped upon the king's toes- accidentally- and the
- king, as became his royalty, was contemptuously unconscious of it
- and indifferent to it; but the third time Hugo entertained himself
- in that way, the king felled him to the ground with a cudgel, to the
- prodigious delight of the tribe. Hugo, consumed with anger and
- shame, sprang up, seized a cudgel, and came at his small adversary
- in a fury. Instantly a ring was formed around the gladiators, and
- the betting and cheering began. But poor Hugo stood no chance
- whatever. His frantic and lubberly 'prentice-work found but a poor
- market for itself when pitted against an arm which had been trained by
- the first masters of Europe in single-stick, quarter-staff, and
- every art and trick of swordsmanship. The little king stood, alert but
- at graceful ease, and caught and turned aside the thick rain of
- blows with a facility and precision which set the motley onlookers
- wild with admiration; and every now and then, when his practised eye
- detected an opening, and a lightning-swift rap upon Hugo's head
- followed as a result, the storm of cheers and laughter that swept
- the place was something wonderful to hear. At the end of fifteen
- minutes, Hugo, all battered, bruised, and the target for a pitiless
- bombardment of ridicule, slunk from the field; and the unscathed
- hero of the fight was seized and borne aloft upon the shoulders of the
- joyous rabble to the place of honor beside the Ruffler, where with
- vast ceremony he was crowned King of the Game-Cocks; his meaner
- title being at the same time solemnly canceled and annulled, and a
- decree of banishment from the gang pronounced against any who should
- henceforth utter it.
- All attempts to make the king serviceable to the troop had failed.
- He had stubbornly refused to act; moreover, he was always trying to
- escape. He had been thrust into an unwatched kitchen, the first day of
- his return; he not only came forth empty-handed, but tried to rouse
- the housemates. He was sent out with a tinker to help him at his work;
- he would not work; moreover, he threatened the tinker with his own
- soldering-iron; and finally both Hugo and the tinker found their hands
- full with the mere matter of keeping him from getting away. He
- delivered the thunders of his royalty upon the heads of all who
- hampered his liberties or tried to force him to service. He was sent
- out, in Hugo's charge, in company with a slatternly woman and a
- diseased baby, to beg; but the result was not encouraging- he declined
- to plead for the mendicants, or be a party to their cause in any way.
- Thus several days went by; and the miseries of this tramping life,
- and the weariness and sordidness and meanness and vulgarity of it,
- became gradually and steadily so intolerable to the captive that he
- began at last to feel that his release from the hermit's knife must
- prove only a temporary respite from death, at best.
- But at night, in his dreams, these things were forgotten, and he
- was on his throne, and master again. This, of course, intensified
- the sufferings of the awakening- so the mortifications of each
- succeeding morning of the few that passed between his return to
- bondage and the combat with Hugo, grew bitterer, and harder and harder
- to bear.
- The morning after that combat, Hugo got up with a heart filled
- with vengeful purposes against the king. He had two plans in
- particular. One was to inflict upon the lad what would be, to his
- proud spirit and 'imagined' royalty, a peculiar humiliation; and if he
- failed to accomplish this, his other plan was to put a crime of some
- kind upon the king and then betray him into the implacable clutches of
- the law.
- In pursuance of the first plan, he proposed to put a 'clime'
- upon the king's leg, rightly judging that that would mortify him to
- the last and perfect degree; and as soon as the clime should
- operate, he meant to get Canty's help, and force the king to expose
- his leg in the highway and beg for alms. 'Clime' was the cant term for
- a sore, artificially created. To make a clime, the operator made a
- paste or poultice of unslaked lime, soap, and the rust of old iron,
- and spread it upon a piece of leather, which was then bound tightly
- upon the leg. This would presently fret off the skin, and make the
- flesh raw and angry-looking; blood was then rubbed upon the limb,
- which, being fully dried, took on a dark and repulsive color. Then a
- bandage of soiled rags was put on in a cleverly careless way which
- would allow the hideous ulcer to be seen and move the compassion of
- the passer-by.*(18)
- Hugo got the help of the tinker whom the king had cowed with the
- soldering-iron; they took the boy out on a tinkering tramp, and as
- soon as they were out of sight of the camp they threw him down and the
- tinker held him while Hugo bound the poultice tight and fast upon
- his leg.
- The king raged and stormed, and promised to hang the two the
- moment the scepter was in his hand again; but they kept a firm grip
- upon him and enjoyed his impotent struggling and jeered at his
- threats. This continued until the poultice began to bite; and in no
- long time its work would have been perfected, if there had been no
- interruption. But there was; for about this time the 'slave' who had
- made the speech denouncing England's laws, appeared on the scene and
- put an end to the enterprise, and stripped off the poultice and
- bandage.
- The king wanted to borrow his deliverer's cudgel and warm the
- jackets of the two rascals on the spot; but the man said no, it
- would bring trouble- leave the matter till night; the whole, tribe
- being together, then, the outside world would not venture to interfere
- or interrupt. He marched the party back to camp and reported the
- affair to the Ruffler, who listened, pondered, and then decided that
- the king should not be again detailed to beg, since it was plain he
- was worthy of something higher and better- wherefore, on the spot he
- promoted him from the mendicant rank and appointed him to steal!
- Hugo was overjoyed. He had already tried to make the king steal,
- and failed; but there would be no more trouble of that sort now,
- for, of course, the king would not dream of defying a distinct command
- delivered directly from headquarters. So he planned a raid for that
- very afternoon, purposing to get the king in the law's grip in the
- course of it; and to do it, too, with such ingenious strategy, that it
- should seem to be accidental and unintentional; for the King of the
- Game-Cocks was popular now, and the gang might not deal over-gently
- with an unpopular member who played so serious a treachery upon him as
- the delivering him over to the common enemy, the law.
- Very well. All in good time Hugo strolled off to a neighboring
- village with his prey; and the two drifted slowly up and down one
- street after another, the one watching sharply for a sure chance to
- achieve his evil purpose, and the other watching as sharply for a
- chance to dart away and get free of his infamous captivity forever.
- Both threw away some tolerably fair-looking opportunities; for
- both, in their secret hearts, were resolved to make absolutely sure
- work this time, and neither meant to allow his fevered desires to
- seduce him into any venture that had much uncertainty about it.
- Hugo's chance came first. For at last a woman approached who
- carried a fat package of some sort in a basket. Hugo's eyes sparkled
- with sinful pleasure as he said to himself, 'Breath o' my life, an I
- can but put that upon him, 'tis good-den and God keep thee, King of
- the Game-Cocks!' He waited and watched- outwardly patient, but
- inwardly consuming with excitement- till the woman had passed by,
- and the time was ripe; then said, in a low voice; 'Tarry here till I
- come again,' and darted stealthily after the prey.
- The king's heart was filled with joy- he could make his escape
- now, if Hugo's quest only carried him far enough away.
- But he was to have no such luck. Hugo crept behind the woman,
- snatched the package, and came running back, wrapping it in an old
- piece of blanket which he carried on his arm. The hue and cry was
- raised in a moment by the woman, who knew her loss by the lightening
- of her burden, although she had not seen the pilfering done. Hugo
- thrust the bundle into the king's hands without halting, saying:
- 'Now speed ye after me with the rest, and cry "Stop thief!" but
- mind ye lead them astray.'
- The next moment Hugo turned a corner and darted down a crooked
- alley- and in another moment or two he lounged into view again,
- looking innocent and indifferent, and took up a position behind a post
- to watch results.
- The insulted king threw the bundle on the ground; and the
- blanket fell away from it just as the woman arrived, with an
- augmenting crowd at her heels; she seized the king's wrist with one
- hand, snatched up her bundle with the other, and began to pour out a
- tirade of abuse upon the boy while he struggled, without success, to
- free himself from her grip.
- Hugo had seen enough- his enemy was captured and the law would get
- him now- so he slipped away, jubilant and chuckling and wended
- campward, framing a judicious version of the matter to give to the
- Ruffler's crew as he strode along.
- The king continued to struggle in the woman's grasp, and now and
- then cried out, in vexation:
- 'Unhand me, thou foolish creature; it was not I that bereaved thee
- of thy paltry goods.'
- The crowd closed around, threatening the king and calling him
- names; a brawny blacksmith in leather apron, and sleeves rolled to his
- elbows, made a reach for him, saying he would trounce him well, for
- a lesson; but just then a long sword flashed in the air and fell
- with convincing force upon the man's arm, flat-side down, the
- fantastic owner of it remarking, pleasantly at the same time:
- 'Marry, good souls, let us proceed gently, not with ill blood
- and uncharitable words. This is matter for the law's consideration,
- not private and unofficial handling. Loose thy hold from the boy,
- goodwife.'
- The blacksmith averaged the stalwart soldier with a glance, then
- went muttering away, rubbing his arm; the woman released the boy's
- wrist reluctantly; the crowd eyed the stranger unlovingly, but
- prudently closed their mouths. The king sprang to his deliverer's
- side, with flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes exclaiming:
- 'Thou hast lagged sorely, but thou comest in good season now,
- Sir Miles; carve me this rabble to rags!'
- CHAPTER XXIII
- The Prince a Prisoner
-
- HENDON forced back a smile, and bent down and whispered in the
- king's ear:
- 'Softly, softly my prince, wag thy tongue warily- nay, suffer it
- not to wag at all. Trust in me- all shall go well in the end.' Then he
- added, to himself: 'Sir Miles! Bless me, I had totally forgot I was
- a knight! Lord how marvelous a thing it is, the grip his memory doth
- take upon his quaint and crazy fancies!... An empty and foolish
- title is mine, and yet it is something to have deserved it, for I
- think it is more honor to be held worthy to be a specter-knight in his
- Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows, than to be held base enough to be an
- earl in some of the real kingdoms of this world.'
- The crowd fell apart to admit a constable, who approached and
- was about to lay his hand upon the king's shoulder, when Hendon said:
- 'Gently, good friend, withhold your hand- he shall go peaceably; I
- am responsible for that. Lead on, we will follow.'
- The officer led, with the woman and her bundle; Miles and the king
- followed after, with the crowd at their heels. The king was inclined
- to rebel; but Hendon said to him in a low voice:
- 'Reflect, sire- your laws are the wholesome breath of your own
- royalty; shall their source reject them, yet require the branches to
- respect them? Apparently, one of these laws has been broken; when
- the king is on his throne again, can it ever grieve him to remember
- that when he was seemingly a private person he loyally sunk the king
- in the citizen and submitted to its authority?'
- 'Thou art right; say no more; thou shalt see that whatsoever the
- king of England requires a subject to suffer under the law, he will
- himself suffer while he holdeth the station of a subject.'
- When the woman was called upon to testify before the justice of
- the peace, she swore that the small prisoner at the bar was the person
- who had committed the theft; there was none able to show the contrary,
- so the king stood convicted. The bundle was now unrolled, and when the
- contents proved to be a plump little dressed pig, the judge looked
- troubled, while Hendon turned pale, and his body was thrilled with
- an electric shiver of dismay; but the king remained unmoved, protected
- by his ignorance. The judge meditated, during an ominous pause, then
- turned to the woman, with question:
- 'What dost thou hold this property to be worth?'
- The woman courtesied and replied:
- 'Three shillings and eightpence, your worship- I could not abate a
- penny and set forth the value honestly.'
- The justice glanced around uncomfortably upon the crowd, then
- nodded to the constable and said:
- 'Clear the court and close the doors.'
- It was done. None remained but the two officials, the accused, the
- accuser, and Miles Hendon. This latter was rigid and colorless, and on
- his forehead big drops of cold sweat gathered, broke and blended
- together, and trickled down his face. The judge turned to the woman
- again, and said, in a compassionate voice:
- ''Tis a poor ignorant lad, and mayhap was driven hard by hunger,
- for these be grievous times for the unfortunate; mark you, he hath not
- an evil face- but when hunger driveth- Good woman! dost know that when
- one steals a thing above the value of thirteen pence ha'penny the
- law saith he shall hang for it?'
- The little king started, wide-eyed with consternation, but
- controlled himself and held his peace; but not so the woman. She
- sprang to her feet, shaking with fright and cried out:
- 'Oh, good lack, what have I done! God-a-mercy, I would not hang
- the poor thing for the whole world! Ah, save me from this, your
- worship- what shall I do, what can I do?'
- The justice maintained his judicial composure, and simply said:
- 'Doubtless it is allowable to revise the value, since it is not
- yet writ upon the record.'
- 'Then in God's name call the pig eightpence, and heaven bless
- the day that freed my conscience of this awesome thing!'
- Miles Hendon forgot all decorum in his delight; and surprised
- the king and wounded his dignity by throwing his arms around him and
- hugging him.
- The woman made her grateful adieux and started away with her
- pig; and when the constable opened the door for her, he followed her
- out into the narrow hall. The justice proceeded to write in his
- record-book. Hendon, always alert, thought he would like to know why
- the officer followed the woman out; so he slipped softly into the
- dusky hall and listened. He heard a conversation to this effect:
- 'It is a fat pig, and promises good eating; I will buy it of thee;
- here is the eightpence.'
- 'Eightpence, indeed! Thou'lt do no such thing. It cost me three
- shillings and eightpence, good honest coin of the last reign, that old
- Harry that's just dead ne'er touched nor tampered with. A fig for
- thy eightpence!'
- 'Stands the wind in that quarter? Thou wast under oath, and so
- swore falsely when thou saidst the value was but eightpence. Come
- straightway back with me before his worship, and answer for the
- crime!- and then the lad will hang.'
- 'There, there, dear heart, say no more, I am content. Give me
- the eightpence, and hold thy peace about the matter.'
- The woman went off crying; Hendon slipped back into the courtroom,
- and the constable presently followed, after hiding his prize in some
- convenient place. The justice wrote a while longer, then read the king
- a wise and kindly lecture, and sentenced him to a short imprisonment
- in the common jail, to be followed by a public flogging. The astounded
- king opened his mouth and was probably going to order the good judge
- to be beheaded on the spot; but he caught a warning sign from
- Hendon, and succeeded in closing his mouth again before he lost
- anything out of it. Hendon took him by the hand, now made reverence to
- the justice, and the two departed in the wake of the constable
- toward the jail. The moment the street was reached, the inflamed
- monarch halted, snatched away his hand, and exclaimed:
- 'Idiot, dost imagine I will enter a common jail alive?'
- Hendon bent down and said, somewhat sharply:
- 'Will you trust in me? Peace! and forbear to worsen our chances
- with dangerous speech. What God wills, will happen; thou canst not
- hurry it, thou canst not alter it; therefore wait; and be patient-
- 'twill be time enow to rail or rejoice when what is to happen has
- happened.'*(19)
- CHAPTER XXIV
- The Escape
-
- THE short winter day was nearly ended. The streets were
- deserted, save for a few random stragglers, and these hurried straight
- along, with the intent look of people who were only anxious to
- accomplish their errands as quickly as possible and then snugly
- house themselves from the rising wind and the gathering twilight. They
- looked neither to the right nor to the left; they paid no attention to
- our party, they did not even seem to see them. Edward the Sixth
- wondered if the spectacle of a king on his way to jail had ever
- encountered such marvelous indifference before. By and by the
- constable arrived at a deserted market-square and proceeded to cross
- it. When he had reached the middle of it, Hendon laid his hand upon
- his arm, and said in a low voice:
- 'Bide a moment, good sir, there is none in hearing, and I would
- say a word to thee.'
- 'My duty forbids it, sir; prithee, hinder me not, the night
- comes on.'
- 'Stay, nevertheless, for the matter concerns thee nearly. Turn thy
- back moment and seem not to see; let this poor lad escape.'
- 'This to me, sir! I arrest thee in-'
- 'Nay, be not too hasty. See thou be careful and commit no
- foolish error'- then he shut his voice down to a whisper, and said
- in the man's ear- 'the pig thou hast purchased for eightpence may cost
- thee thy neck, man!'
- The poor constable, taken by surprise, was speechless at first,
- then found his tongue and fell to blustering and threatening; but
- Hendon was tranquil, and waited with patience till his breath was
- spent; then said:
- 'I have a liking to thee, friend, and would not willingly see thee
- come to harm. Observe, I heard it all- every word. I will prove it
- to thee.' Then he repeated the conversation which the officer and
- the woman had had together in the hall, word for word, and ended with:
- 'There- have I set it forth correctly? Should not I be able to set
- it forth correctly before the judge, if occasion required?'
- The man was dumb with fear and distress for a moment; then he
- rallied and said with forced lightness:
- ''Tis making a mighty matter indeed, out of a jest; I but
- plagued the woman for mine amusement.'
- 'Kept you the woman's pig for amusement?'
- The man answered sharply:
- 'Naught else, good sir- I tell thee 'twas but a jest.'
- 'I do begin to believe thee,' said Hendon, with a perplexing
- mixture of mockery and half-conviction in his tone; 'tarry thou here a
- moment whilst I run and ask his worship- for nathless, he being a
- man experienced in law, in jests, in-'
- He was moving away, still talking; the constable hesitated,
- fidgeted, spat an oath or two, then cried out:
- 'Hold, hold, good sir- prithee, wait a little- the judge! why man,
- he hath no more sympathy with a jest than hath a dead corpse!- come,
- and we will speak further. Ods body! I seem to be in evil case- and
- all for an innocent and thoughtless pleasantry. I am a man of
- family; and my wife and little ones- List to reason, good your
- worship; what wouldst thou of me?'
- 'Only that thou be blind and dumb and paralytic whilst one may
- count a hundred thousand- counting slowly,' said Hendon, with the
- expression of a man who asks but a reasonable favor, and that a very
- little one.
- 'It is my destruction!' said the constable despairingly. 'Ah, be
- reasonable, good sir; only look at this matter, on all its sides,
- and see how mere a jest it is- how manifestly and how plainly it is
- so. And even if one granted it were not a jest, it is a fault so small
- that e'en the grimmest penalty it could call forth would be but a
- rebuke and warning from the judge's lips.'
- Hendon replied with a solemnity which chilled the air about him:
- 'This jest of thine hath a name in law- wot you what it is?'
- 'I knew it not! Peradventure I have been unwise. I never dreamed
- it had a name- ah, sweet heaven, I thought it was original.'
- 'Yes, it hath a name. In the law this crime is called Non compos
- mentis lex talionis sic transit gloria Mundi.'
- 'Ah, my God!'
- 'And the penalty is death!'
- 'God be merciful to me, a sinner!'
- 'By advantage taken of one in fault, in dire peril, and at thy
- mercy, thou hast seized goods worth above thirteen pence ha'penny,
- paying but a trifle for the same; and this, in the eye of the law,
- is constructive barratry, misprision of treason, malfeasance in
- office, ad hominem expurgatis in statu quo- and the penalty is death
- by the halter, without ransom, commutation, or benefit of clergy.'
- 'Bear me up, bear me up, sweet sir, my legs do fail me! Be thou
- merciful- spare me this doom, and I will turn my back and see naught
- that shall happen.'
- 'Good! now thou'rt wise and reasonable. And thou'lt restore the
- pig?'
- 'I will, I will, indeed- nor ever touch another, though heaven
- send it and archangel fetch it. Go- I am blind for thy sake- I see
- nothing. I will say thou didst break in and wrest the prisoner from my
- hands by force. It is but a crazy, ancient door- I will batter it down
- myself betwixt midnight and the morning.'
- 'Do it, good soul, no harm will come of it; the judge hath a
- loving charity for this poor lad, and will shed no tears and break
- no jailer's bones for his escape.'
- CHAPTER XXV
- Hendon Hall
-
- AS soon as Hendon and the king were out of sight of the constable,
- his majesty was instructed to hurry to a certain place outside the
- town, and wait there, whilst Hendon should go to the inn and settle
- his account. Half an hour later the two friends were blithely
- jogging eastward on Hendon's sorry steeds. The king was warm and
- comfortable now, for he had cast his rags and clothed himself in the
- second-hand suit which Hendon had bought on London Bridge.
- Hendon wished to guard against over-fatiguing the boy; he judged
- that hard journeys, irregular meals, and illiberal measures of sleep
- would be bad for his crazed mind, while rest, regularity, and moderate
- exercise would be pretty sure to hasten its cure; he longed to see the
- stricken intellect made well again and its diseased visions driven out
- of the tormented little head; therefore he resolved to move by easy
- stages toward the home whence he had so long been banished, instead of
- obeying the impulse of his impatience and hurrying along night and
- day.
- When he and the king had journeyed about ten miles, they reached a
- considerable village, and halted there for the night, at a good inn.
- The former relations were resumed; Hendon stood behind the king's
- chair while he dined, and waited upon him; undressed him when he was
- ready for bed; then took the floor for his own quarters, and slept
- athwart the door, rolled up in a blanket.
- The next day, and the next day after, they jogged lazily along
- talking over the adventures they had met since their separation, and
- mightily enjoying each other's narratives. Hendon detailed all his
- wide wanderings in search of the king, and described how the archangel
- had led him a fool's journey all over the forest, and taken him back
- to the hut finally, when he found he could not get rid of him. Then-
- he said- the old man went into the bed-chamber and came staggering
- back looking broken-hearted, and saying he had expected to find that
- the boy had returned and lain down in there to rest, but it was not
- so. Hendon had waited at the hut all day; hope of the king's return
- died out then, and he departed upon the quest again.
- 'And old Sanctum Sanctorum was truly sorry your Highness came
- not back,' said Hendon; 'I saw it in his face.'
- 'Marry, I will never doubt that!' said the king- and then told his
- own story; after which Hendon was sorry he had not destroyed the
- archangel.
- During the last day of the trip, Hendon's spirits were soaring.
- His tongue ran constantly. He talked about his old father, and his
- brother Arthur, and told of many things which illustrated their high
- and generous characters; he went into loving frenzies over his
- Edith, and was so glad-hearted that he was even able to say some
- gentle and brotherly things about Hugh. He dwelt a deal on the
- coming meeting at Hendon Hall; what a surprise it would be to
- everybody, and what an outburst of thanksgiving and delight there
- would be.
- It was a fair region, dotted with cottages and orchards, and the
- road led through broad pasture-lands whose receding expanses, marked
- with gentle elevations and depressions, suggested the swelling and
- subsiding undulations of the sea. In the afternoon the returning
- prodigal made constant deflections from his course to see if by
- ascending some hillock he might not pierce the distance and catch a
- glimpse of his home. At last he was successful, and cried out
- excitedly:
- 'There is the village, my prince, and there is the Hall close
- by! You may see the towers from here; and that wood there- that is
- my father's park. Ah, now thou'lt know what state and grandeur be! A
- house with seventy rooms- think of that!- and seven and twenty
- servants! A brave lodging for such as we, is it not so? Come, let us
- speed- my impatience will not brook further delay.'
- All possible hurry was made; still, it was after three o'clock
- before the village was reached. The travelers scampered through it,
- Hendon's tongue going all the time. 'Here is the church- covered
- with the same ivy- none gone, none added.' 'Yonder is the inn, the old
- Red Lion- and yonder is the market-place.' 'Here is the Maypole, and
- here the pump- nothing is altered; nothing but the people, at any
- rate; ten years make a change in people; some of these I seem to know,
- but none know me.' So his chat ran on. The end of the village was soon
- reached; then the travelers struck into a crooked, narrow road, walled
- in with tall hedges, and hurried briskly along it for a half-mile,
- then passed into a vast flower-garden through an imposing gateway
- whose huge stone pillars bore sculptured armorial devices. A noble
- mansion was before them.
- 'Welcome to Hendon Hall, my king!' exclaimed Miles. 'Ah, 'tis a
- great day! My father and my brother and the Lady Edith will be so
- mad with joy that they will have eyes and tongue for none but me in
- the first transports of the meeting, and so thou'lt seem but coldly
- welcomed- but mind it not; 'twill soon seem otherwise; for when I
- say thou art my ward, and tell them how costly is my love for thee,
- thou'lt see them take thee to their breasts for Miles Hendon's sake,
- and make their house and hearts thy home forever after!'
- The next moment Hendon sprang to the ground before the great door,
- helped the king down, then took him by the hand and rushed within. A
- few steps brought him to a spacious apartment; he entered, seated
- the king with more hurry than ceremony, then ran toward a young man
- who sat at a writing-table in front of a generous fire of logs.
- 'Embrace me, Hugh,' he cried, 'and say thou'rt glad I am come
- again! and call our father, for home is not home till I shall touch
- his hand, and see his face, and hear his voice once more!'
- But Hugh only drew back, after betraying a momentary surprise, and
- bent a grave stare upon the intruder- a stare which indicated somewhat
- of offended dignity at first, then changed, in response to some inward
- thought or purpose, to an expression of marveling curiosity, mixed
- with a real or assumed compassion. Presently he said, in a mild voice:
- 'Thy wits seem touched, poor stranger; doubtless thou hast
- suffered privations and rude buffetings at the world's hands; thy
- looks and dress betoken it. Whom dost thou take me to be?'
- 'Take thee? Prithee, for whom else than whom thou art? I take thee
- to be Hugh Hendon,' said Miles, sharply.
- The other continued, in the same soft tone:
- 'And whom dost thou imagine thyself to be?'
- 'Imagination hath naught to do with it! Dost thou pretend thou
- knowest me not for thy brother Miles Hendon?'
- An expression of pleased surprise flitted across Hugh's face,
- and he exclaimed:
- 'What! thou art not jesting! can the dead come to life? God be
- praised if it be so! Our poor lost boy restored to our arms after
- all these cruel years! Ah, it seems too good to be true, it is too
- good to be true- I charge thee, have pity, do not trifle with me!
- Quick- come to the light- let me scan thee well!'
- He seized Miles by the arm, dragged him to the window, and began
- to devour him from head to foot with his eyes, turning him this way
- and that, and stepping briskly around him and about him to prove him
- from all points of view; whilst the returned prodigal, all aglow
- with gladness, smiled, laughed, and kept nodding his head and saying:
- 'Go on, brother, go on, and fear not; thou'lt find nor limb nor
- feature that cannot bide the test. Scour and scan me to thy content,
- my dear old Hugh- I am indeed thy old Miles, thy same old Miles, thy
- lost brother, is't not so? Ah, 'tis a great day- I said 'twas a
- great day! Give me thy hand, give me thy cheek- lord, I am like to die
- of very joy!'
- He was about to throw himself upon his brother; but Hugh put up
- his hand in dissent, then dropped his chin mournfully upon his breast,
- saying with emotion:
- 'Ah, God of his mercy give me strength to bear this grievous
- disappointment!'
- Miles, amazed, could not speak for a moment; then he found his
- tongue, and cried out:
- 'What disappointment? Am I not thy brother?'
- Hugh shook his head sadly, and said:
- 'I pray heaven it may prove so, and that other eyes may find the
- resemblances that are hid from mine. Alack, I fear me the letter spoke
- but too truly.'
- 'What letter?'
- 'One that came from oversea, some six or seven years ago. It
- said my brother died in battle.'
- 'It was a lie! Call thy father- he will know me.'
- 'One may not call the dead.'
- 'Dead?' Miles's voice was subdued, and his lips trembled. 'My
- father dead!- oh, this is heavy news. Half my new joy is withered now.
- Prithee, let me see my brother Arthur- he will know me; he will know
- me and console me.'
- 'He, also, is dead.'
- 'God be merciful to me, a stricken man! Gone- both gone- the
- worthy taken and the worthless spared in me! Ah! I crave your
- mercy!- do not say the Lady Edith-'
- 'Is dead? No, she lives.'
- 'Then God be praised, my joy is whole again! Speed thee,
- brother- let her come to me! An she say I am not myself- but she
- will not; no, no, she will know me, I were a fool to doubt it. Bring
- her- bring the old servants; they, too, will know me.'
- 'All are gone but five- Peter, Halsey, David, Bernard, and
- Margaret.'
- So saying, Hugh left the room. Miles stood musing awhile, then
- began to walk the floor, muttering:
- 'The five arch villains have survived the two-and-twenty leal
- and honest- 'tis an odd thing.'
- He continued walking back and forth, muttering to himself; he
- had forgotten the king entirely. By and by his majesty said gravely,
- and with a touch of genuine compassion, though the words themselves
- were capable of being interpreted ironically:
- 'Mind not thy mischance, good man; there be others in the world
- whose identity is denied, and whose claims are derided. Thou hast
- company.'
- 'Ah, my king,' cried Hendon, coloring slightly, 'do not thou
- condemn me- wait, and thou shalt see. I am no impostor- she will say
- it; you shall hear it from the sweetest lips in England. I an
- impostor? Why I know this old hall, these pictures of my ancestors,
- and all these things that are about us, as a child knoweth its own
- nursery. Here was I born and bred, my lord; I speak the truth; I would
- not deceive thee; and should none else believe, I pray thee do not
- thou doubt me- I could not bear it.'
- 'I do not doubt thee,' said the king, with a childlike
- simplicity and faith.
- 'I thank thee out of my heart!' exclaimed Hendon, with a
- fervency which showed that he was touched. The king added, with the
- same gentle simplicity:
- 'Dost thou doubt me?'
- A guilty confusion seized upon Hendon, and he was grateful that
- the door opened to admit Hugh, at that moment, and saved him the
- necessity of replying.
- A beautiful lady, richly clothed, followed Hugh, and after her
- came several liveried servants. The lady walked slowly, with her
- head bowed and her eyes fixed upon the floor. The face was unspeakably
- sad. Miles Hendon sprang forward, crying out:
- 'Oh, my Edith, my darling-'
- But Hugh waved him back, gravely, and said to the lady:
- 'Look upon him. Do you know him?'
- At the sound of Miles's voice the woman had started slightly,
- and her cheeks had flushed; she was trembling now. She stood still,
- during an impressive pause of several moments; then slowly lifted up
- her head and looked into Hendon's eyes with a stony and frightened
- gaze; the blood sank out of her face, drop by drop, till nothing
- remained but the gray pallor of death; then she said, in a voice as
- dead as the face, 'I know him not!' and turned, with a moan and
- stifled sob, and tottered out of the room.
- Miles Hendon sank into a chair and covered his face with his
- hands. After a pause, his brother said to the servants:
- 'You have observed him. Do you know him?'
- They shook their heads; then the master said:
- 'The servants know you not, sir. I fear there is some mistake. You
- have seen that my wife knew you not.'
- 'Thy wife!' In an instant Hugh was pinned to the wall, with an
- iron grip about his throat. 'Oh, thou fox-hearted slave, I see it all!
- Thou'st writ the lying letter thyself, and my stolen bride and goods
- are its fruit. There- now get thee gone, lest I shame mine honorable
- soldiership with the slaying of so pitiful a manikin!'
- Hugh, red-faced and almost suffocated, reeled to the nearest
- chair, and commanded the servants to seize and bind the murderous
- stranger. They hesitated, and one of them said:
- 'He is armed, Sir Hugh, and we are weaponless.'
- 'Armed? What of it, and ye so many? Upon him, I say!'
- But Miles warned them to be careful what they did, and added:
- 'Ye know me of old- I have not changed; come oh, an it like you.'
- This reminder did not hearten the servants much; they still held
- back.
- 'Then go, ye paltry cowards, and arm yourselves and guard the
- doors, while I send one to fetch the watch,' said Hugh. He turned,
- at the threshold, and said to Miles, 'You'll find it to your advantage
- to offend not with useless endeavours at escape.'
- 'Escape? Spare thyself discomfort, an that is all that troubles
- thee. For Miles Hendon is master of Hendon Hall and all its
- belongings. He will remain- doubt it not.'
- CHAPTER XXVI
- Disowned
-
- THE king sat musing a few moments, then looked up and said:
- ''Tis strange- most strange. I cannot account for it.'
- 'No, it is not strange, my liege. I know him, and this conduct
- is but natural. He was a rascal from his birth.'
- 'Oh, I spake not of him, Sir Miles.'
- 'Not of him? Then of what? What is it that is strange?'
- 'That the king is not missed.'
- 'How? Which? I doubt I do not understand.'
- 'Indeed! Doth it not strike you as being passing strange that
- the land is not filled with couriers and proclamations describing my
- person and making search for me? Is it no matter for commotion and
- distress that the head of the state is gone?- that I am vanished
- away and lost?'
- 'Most true, my king, I had forgot.' Then Hendon sighed, and
- muttered to himself. 'Poor ruined mind- still busy with its pathetic
- dream.'
- 'But I have a plan that shall right us both. I will write a paper,
- in three tongues- Latin, Greek, and English- and thou shall haste away
- with it to London in the morning. Give it to none but my uncle, the
- Lord Hertford; when he shall see it, he will know and say I wrote
- it. Then he will send for me.'
- 'Might it not be best, my prince, that we wait here until I
- prove myself and make my rights secure to my domains? I should be so
- much the better able then to-'
- The king interrupted him imperiously:
- 'Peace! What are thy paltry domains, thy trivial interests,
- contrasted with matters which concern the weal of a nation and the
- integrity of a throne!' Then he added, in a gentle voice, as if he
- were sorry for his severity, 'Obey and have no fear; I will right
- thee, I will make thee whole- yes, more than whole. I shall
- remember, and requite.'
- So saying, he took the pen, and set himself to work. Hendon
- contemplated him lovingly awhile, then said to himself:
- 'An it were dark, I should think it was a king that spoke; there's
- no denying it, when the humor's upon him he doth thunder and lighten
- like your true king- now where got he that trick? See him scribble and
- scratch away contentedly at his meaningless pot-hooks, fancying them
- to be Latin and Greek- and except my wit shall serve me with a lucky
- device for diverting him from his purpose, I shall be forced to
- pretend to post away to-morrow on this wild errand which he hath
- invented for me.'
- The next moment Sir Miles's thoughts had gone back to the recent
- episode. So absorbed was he in his musings, that when the king
- presently handed him the paper which he had been writing, he
- received it and pocketed it without being conscious of the act. 'How
- marvelous strange she acted,' he muttered. 'I think she knew me- and I
- think she did not know me. These opinions do conflict, I perceive it
- plainly; I cannot reconcile them, neither can I, by argument,
- dismiss either of the two, or even persuade one to outweigh the other.
- The matter standeth simply thus: she must have known my face, my
- figure, my voice, for how could it be otherwise? yet she said she knew
- me not, and that is proof perfect, for she cannot lie. But stop- I
- think I begin to see. Peradventure he hath influenced her- commanded
- her-compelled her to lie. That is the solution! The riddle is
- unriddled. She seemed dead with fear- yes, she was under his
- compulsion. I will seek her; I will find her; now that he is away, she
- will speak her true mind. She will remember the old times when we were
- little playfellows together, and this will soften her heart, and she
- will no more betray me, but will confess me. There is no treacherous
- blood in her- no, she was always honest and true. She has loved me
- in those old days- this is my security; for whom one has loved, one
- cannot betray.'
- He stepped eagerly toward the door; at that moment it opened,
- and the Lady Edith entered. She was very pale, but she walked with a
- firm step, and her carriage was full of grace and gentle dignity.
- Her face was as sad as before.
- Miles sprang forward, with a happy confidence, to meet her, but
- she checked him with a hardly perceptible gesture, and he stopped
- where he was. She seated herself, and asked him to do likewise. Thus
- simply did she take the sense of old-comradeship out of him, and
- transform him into a stranger and a guest. The surprise of it, the
- bewildering unexpectedness of it, made him begin to question, for a
- moment, if he was the person he was pretending to be, after all. The
- Lady Edith said:
- 'Sir, I have come to warn you. The mad cannot be persuaded out
- of their delusions, perchance; but doubtless they may be persuaded
- to avoid perils. I think this dream of yours hath the seeming of
- honest truth to you, and therefore is not criminal- but do not tarry
- here with it; for here it is dangerous.' She looked steadily into
- Miles's face a moment, then added, impressively, 'It is the more
- dangerous for that you are much like what our lost lad must have grown
- to be, if he had lived.'
- 'Heavens, madam, but I am he!'
- 'I truly think you think it, sir. I question not your honesty in
- that- I but warn you, that is all. My husband is master in this
- region; his power hath hardly any limit; the people prosper or starve,
- as he wills. If you resembled not the man whom you profess to be, my
- husband might bid you pleasure yourself with your dream in peace;
- but trust me, I know him well, I know what he will do; he will say
- to all that you are but a mad impostor, and straightway all will
- echo him.' She bent upon Miles that same steady look once more, and
- added: 'If you were Miles Hendon, and he knew it and all the region
- knew it- consider what I am saying, weigh it well- you would stand
- in the same peril, your punishment would be no less sure; he would
- deny you and denounce you, and none would be bold enough to give you
- countenance.'
- 'Most truly I believe it,' said Miles, bitterly. 'The power that
- can command one lifelong friend to betray and disown another, and be
- obeyed, may well look to be obeyed in quarters where bread and life
- are on the stake and no cobweb ties of loyalty and honor are
- concerned.'
- A faint tinge appeared for a moment in the lady's cheek, and she
- dropped her eyes to the floor; but her voice betrayed no emotion
- when she proceeded:
- 'I have warned you, I must still warn you, to go hence. This man
- will destroy you else. He is a tyrant who knows no pity. I, who am his
- fettered slave, know this. Poor Miles, and Arthur, and my dear
- guardian, Sir Richard, are free of him, and at rest- better that you
- were with them than that you bide here in the clutches of this
- miscreant. Your pretensions are a menace to his title and possessions;
- you have assaulted him in his own house- you are ruined if you stay.
- Go- do not hesitate. If you lack money, take this purse, I beg of you,
- and bribe the servants to let you pass. Oh, be warned, poor soul,
- and escape while you may.'
- Miles declined the purse with a gesture, and rose up and stood
- before her.
- 'Grant me one thing,' he said. 'Let your eyes rest upon mine, so
- that I may see if they be steady. There- now answer me. Am I Miles
- Hendon?'
- 'No. I know you not.'
- 'Swear it!'
- The answer was low, but distinct:
- 'I swear.'
- 'Oh, this passes belief!'
- 'Fly! Why will you waste the precious time? Fly and save
- yourself.'
- At that moment the officers burst into the room and a violent
- struggle began; but Hendon was soon overpowered and dragged away.
- The king was taken also, and both were bound and led to prison.
- CHAPTER XXVII
- In Prison
-
- THE cells were all crowded; so the two friends were chained in a
- large room where persons charged with trifling offenses were
- commonly kept. They had company, for there were some twenty manacled
- or fettered prisoners here, of both sexes and of varying ages- an
- obscene and noisy gang. The king chafed bitterly over the stupendous
- indignity thus put upon his royalty, but Hendon was moody and
- taciturn. He was pretty thoroughly bewildered. He had come home, a
- jubilant prodigal, expecting to find everybody wild with joy over
- his return; and instead had got the cold shoulder and a jail. The
- promise and the fulfilment differed so widely, that the effect was
- stunning; he could not decide whether it was most tragic or most
- grotesque. He felt much as a man might who had danced blithely out
- to enjoy a rainbow, and got struck by lightning.
- But gradually his confused and tormenting thoughts settled down
- into some sort of order, and then his mind centered itself upon Edith.
- He turned her conduct over, and examined it in all lights, but he
- could not make anything satisfactory out of it. Did she know him?-
- or didn't she know him? It was a perplexing puzzle, and occupied him a
- long time; but he ended, finally, with the conviction that she did
- know him, and had repudiated him for interested reasons. He wanted
- to load her name with curses now; but this name had so long been
- sacred to him that he found he could not bring his tongue to profane
- it.
- Wrapped in prison blankets of a soiled and tattered condition,
- Hendon and the king passed a troubled night. For a bribe the jailer
- had furnished liquor to some of the prisoners; singing of ribald
- songs, fighting, shouting, and carousing, was the natural consequence.
- At last, awhile after midnight, a man attacked a woman and nearly
- killed her by beating her over the head with his manacles before the
- jailer could come to the rescue. The jailer restored peace by giving
- the man a sound clubbing about the head and shoulders- then the
- carousing ceased; and after that, all had an opportunity to sleep
- who did not mind the annoyance of the moanings and groanings of the
- two wounded people.
- During the ensuing week, the days and nights were of a
- monotonous sameness, as to events; men whose faces Hendon remembered
- more or less distinctly came, by day, to gaze at the 'impostor' and
- repudiate and insult him; and by night the carousing and brawling went
- on, with symmetrical regularity. However, there was a change of
- incident at last. The jailer brought in an old man, and said to him:
- 'The villain is in this room- cast thy old eyes about and see if
- thou canst say which is he.'
- Hendon glanced up, and experienced a pleasant sensation for the
- first time since he had been in the jail. He said to himself, 'This is
- Blake Andrews, a servant all his life in my father's family- a good
- honest soul, with a right heart in his breast. That is, formerly.
- But none are true now; all are liars. This man will know me- and
- will deny me, too, like the rest.'
- The old man gazed around the room, glanced at each face in turn,
- and finally said:
- 'I see none here but paltry knaves, scum o' the streets. Which
- is he?'
- The jailer laughed.
- 'Here,' he said; 'scan this big animal, and grant me an opinion.'
- The old man approached, and looked Hendon over, long and
- earnestly, then shook his head and said:
- 'Marry, this is no Hendon- nor ever was!'
- 'Right! Thy old eyes are sound yet. An I were Sir Hugh, I would
- take the shabby carle and-'
- The jailer finished by lifting himself a-tiptoe with an
- imaginary halter, at the same time making a gurgling noise in his
- throat suggestive of suffocation. The old man said, vindictively:
- 'Let him bless God an he fare no worse. An I had the handling o'
- the villain, he should roast, or I am no true man!'
- The jailer laughed a pleasant hyena laugh, and said:
- 'Give him a piece of thy mind, old man- they all do it. Thou'lt
- find it good diversion.'
- Then he sauntered toward his anteroom and disappeared. The old man
- dropped upon his knees and whispered:
- 'God be thanked, thou'rt come again, my master! I believed thou
- wert dead these seven years, and lo, here thou art alive! I knew
- thee the moment I saw thee; and main hard work it was to keep a
- stony countenance and seem to see none here but tuppenny knaves and
- rubbish o' the streets. I am old and poor, Sir Miles; but say the word
- and I will go forth and proclaim the truth though I be strangled for
- it.'
- 'No,' said Hendon, 'thou shalt not. It would ruin thee, and yet
- help but little in my cause. But I thank thee; for thou hast given
- me back somewhat of my lost faith in my kind.'
- The old servant became very valuable to Hendon and the king; for
- he dropped in several times a day to 'abuse' the former, and always
- smuggled in a few delicacies to help out the prison bill of fare; he
- also furnished the current news. Hendon reserved the dainties for
- the king; without them his majesty might not have survived, for he was
- not able to eat the coarse and wretched food provided by the jailer.
- Andrews was obliged to confine himself to brief visits, in order to
- avoid suspicion; but he managed to impart a fair degree of information
- each time- information delivered in a low voice, for Hendon's benefit,
- and interlarded with insulting epithets delivered in a louder voice,
- for the benefit of other hearers.
- So, little by little, the story of the family came out. Arthur had
- been dead six years. This loss, with the absence of news from
- Hendon, impaired his father's health; he believed he was going to die,
- and he wished to see Hugh and Edith settled in life before he passed
- away; but Edith begged hard for delay, hoping for Miles's return; then
- the letter came which brought the news of Miles's death; the shock
- prostrated Sir Richard; he believed his end was very near, and he
- and Hugh insisted upon the marriage; Edith begged for and obtained a
- month's respite; then another, and finally a third; the marriage
- then took place, by the death-bed of Sir Richard. It had not proved
- a happy one. It was whispered about the country that shortly after the
- nuptials the bride found among her husband's papers several rough
- and incomplete drafts of the fatal letter, and had accused him of
- precipitating the marriage- and Sir Richard's death, too- by a
- wicked forgery. Tales of cruelty to the Lady Edith and the servants
- were to be heard on all hands; and since the father's death Sir Hugh
- had thrown off all soft disguises and become a pitiless master
- toward all who in any way depended upon him and his domains for bread.
- There was a bit of Andrews's gossip which the king listened to
- with a lively interest:
- 'There is rumor that the king is mad. But in charity forbear to
- say I mentioned it, for 'tis death to speak of it, they say.'
- His majesty glared at the old man and said:
- 'The king is not mad, good man- and thou'lt find it to thy
- advantage to busy thyself with matters that nearer concern thee than
- this seditious prattle.'
- 'What doth the lad mean?' said Andrews, surprised at this brisk
- assault from such an unexpected quarter. Hendon gave him a sign, and
- he did not pursue his question, but went on with his budget:
- 'The late king is to be buried at Windsor in a day or two- the
- sixteenth of the month- and the new king will be crowned at
- Westminster the twentieth.'
- 'Methinks they must needs find him first,' muttered his majesty;
- then added, confidently, 'but they will look to that- and so also
- shall I.'
- 'In the name of-'
- But the old man got no further- a warning sign from Hendon checked
- his remark. He resumed the thread of his gossip.
- 'Sir Hugh goeth to the coronation- and with grand hopes. He
- confidently looketh to come back a peer, for he is high in favor
- with the Lord Protector.'
- 'What Lord Protector?' asked his majesty.
- 'His grace the Duke of Somerset.'
- 'What Duke of Somerset?'
- 'Marry, there is but one- Seymour, Earl of Hertford.'
- The king asked sharply:
- 'Since when is he a duke, and Lord Protector?'
- 'Since the last day of January.'
- 'And, prithee, who made him so?'
- 'Himself and the Great Council- with the help of the king.'
- His majesty started violently. 'The king!' he cried. 'What king,
- good sir?'
- 'What king, indeed! (God-a-mercy, what aileth the boy?) Sith we
- have but one, 'tis not difficult to answer- his most sacred majesty
- King Edward the Sixth- whom God preserve! Yea, and a dear and gracious
- little urchin is he, too; and whether he be mad or no- and they say he
- mendeth daily- his praises are on all men's lips; and all bless him
- likewise, and offer prayers that he may be spared to reign long in
- England; for he began humanely, with saving the old Duke of
- Norfolk's life, and now is he bent on destroying the cruelest of the
- laws that harry and oppress the people.'
- This news struck his majesty dumb with amazement, and plunged
- him into so deep and dismal a reverie that he heard no more of the old
- man's gossip. He wondered if the 'little urchin' was the beggar-boy
- whom he left dressed in his own garments in the palace. It did not
- seem possible that this could be, for surely his manners and speech
- would betray him if he pretended to be the Prince of Wales- then he
- would be driven out, and search made for the true prince. Could it
- be that the court had set up some sprig of the nobility in his
- place? No, for his uncle would not allow that- he was all-powerful and
- could and would crush such a movement, of course. The boy's musings
- profited him nothing; the more he tried to unriddle the mystery the
- more perplexed he became, the more his head ached, and the worse he
- slept. His impatience to get to London grew hourly, and his
- captivity became almost unendurable.
- Hendon's arts all failed with the king- he could not be comforted,
- but a couple of women who were chained near him, succeeded better.
- Under their gentle ministrations he found peace and learned a degree
- of patience. He was very grateful, and came to love them dearly and to
- delight in the sweet and soothing influence of their presence. He
- asked them why they were in prison, and when they said they were
- Baptists, he smiled, and inquired:
- 'Is that a crime to be shut up for in a prison? Now I grieve,
- for I shall lose ye- they will not keep ye long for such a little
- thing.'
- They did not answer; and something in their faces made him uneasy.
- He said, eagerly:
- 'You do not speak- be good to me, and tell me- there will be no
- other punishment? Prithee, tell me there is no fear of that.'
- They tried to change the topic, but his fears were aroused, and he
- pursued it:
- 'Will they scourge thee? No, no, they would not be so cruel! Say
- they would not. Come, they will not, will they?'
- The women betrayed confusion and distress, but there was no
- avoiding an answer, so one of them said, in a voice choked with
- emotion:
- 'Oh, thou'lt break our hearts, thou gentle spirit! God will help
- us to bear our-'
- 'It is a confession!' the king broke in. 'Then they will scourge
- thee, the stony-hearted wretches! But oh, thou must not weep, I cannot
- bear it. Keep up thy courage- I shall come to my own in time to save
- thee from this bitter thing, and I will do it!'
- When the king awoke in the morning, the women were gone.
- 'They are saved!' he said, joyfully; then added, despondently,
- 'but woe is me!- for they were my comforters.'
- Each of them had left a shred of ribbon pinned to his clothing, in
- token of remembrance. He said he would keep these things always; and
- that soon he would seek out these dear good friends of his and take
- them under his protection.
- Just then the jailer came in with some subordinates and
- commanded that the prisoners be conducted to the jail-yard. The king
- was overjoyed- it would be a blessed thing to see the blue sky and
- breathe the fresh air once more. He fretted and chafed at the slowness
- of the officers, but his turn came at last and he was released from
- his staple and ordered to follow the other prisoners, with Hendon.
- The court, or quadrangle, was stone-paved, and open to the sky.
- The prisoners entered it through a massive archway of masonry, and
- were placed in file, standing, with their backs against the wall. A
- rope was stretched in front of them, and they were also guarded by
- their officers. It was a chill and lowering morning, and a light
- snow which had fallen during the night whitened the great empty
- space and added to the general dismalness of its aspect. Now and
- then a wintry wind shivered through the place and sent the snow
- eddying hither and thither.
- In the center of the court stood two women, chained to posts. A
- glance showed the king that these were his good friends. He shuddered,
- and said to himself, 'Alack, they are not gone free, as I had thought.
- To think that such as these should know the lash!- in England! Ay,
- there's the shame of it- not in Heathenesse, but Christian England!
- They will be scourged; and I, whom they have comforted and kindly
- entreated, must look on and see the great wrong done; it is strange,
- so strange! that I, the very source of power in this broad realm, am
- helpless to protect them. But let these miscreants look well to
- themselves, for there is a day coming when I will require of them a
- heavy reckoning for this work. For every blow they strike now they
- shall feel a hundred then.'
- A great gate swung open and a crowd of citizens poured in. They
- flocked around the two women, and hid them from the king's view. A
- clergyman entered and passed through the crowd, and he also was
- hidden. The king now heard talking, back and forth, as if questions
- were being asked and answered, but he could not make out what was
- said. Next there was a deal of bustle and preparation, and much
- passing and repassing of officials through that part of the crowd that
- stood on the further side of the women; and while this proceeded a
- deep hush gradually fell upon the people.
- Now, by command, the masses parted and fell aside, and the king
- saw a spectacle that froze the marrow in his bones. Fagots had been
- piled about the two women, and a kneeling man was lighting them!
- The women bowed their heads, and covered their faces with their
- hands; the yellow flames began to climb upward among the snapping
- and crackling fagots, and wreaths of blue smoke to stream away on
- the wind; the clergyman lifted his hands and began a prayer- just then
- two young girls came flying through the great gate, uttering
- piercing screams, and threw themselves upon the women at the stake.
- Instantly they were torn away by the officers, and one of them was
- kept in a tight grip, but the other broke loose, saying she would
- die with her mother; and before she could be stopped she had flung her
- arms about her mother's neck again. She was torn away once more, and
- with her gown on fire.
- Two or three men held her, and the burning portion of her gown was
- snatched off and thrown flaming aside, she struggling all the while to
- free herself, and saying she would be alone in the world now, and
- begging to be allowed to die with her mother. Both the girls
- screamed continually, and fought for freedom; but suddenly this tumult
- was drowned under a volley of heart-piercing shrieks of mortal
- agony. The king glanced from the frantic girls to the stake, then
- turned away and leaned his ashen face against the wall, and looked
- no more. He said, 'That which I have seen, in that one little
- moment, will never go out from my memory, but will abide there; and
- I shall see it all the days, and dream of it all the nights, till I
- die. Would God I had been blind!'
- Hendon was watching the king. He said to himself, with
- satisfaction, 'His disorder mendeth; he hath changed, and groweth
- gentler. If he had followed his wont, he would have stormed at these
- varlets, and said he was king, and commanded that the women be
- turned loose unscathed. Soon his delusion will pass away and be
- forgotten, and his poor mind will be whole again. God speed the day!'
- That same day several prisoners were brought in to remain
- overnight, who were being conveyed, under guard, to various places
- in the kingdom, to undergo punishment for crimes committed. The king
- conversed with these- he had made it a point, from the beginning, to
- instruct himself for the kingly office by questioning prisoners
- whenever the opportunity offered- and the tale of their woes wrung his
- heart. One of them was a poor half-witted woman who had stolen a
- yard or two of cloth from a weaver- she was to be hanged for it.
- Another was a man who had been accused of stealing a horse; he said
- the proof had failed, and he had imagined that he was safe from the
- halter; but no- he was hardly free before he was arraigned for killing
- a deer in the king's park; this was proved against him, and now he was
- on his way to the gallows. There was a tradesman's apprentice whose
- case particularly distressed the king; this youth said he found a hawk
- one evening that had escaped from its owner, and he took it home
- with him, imagining himself entitled to it; but the court convicted
- him of stealing it, and sentenced him to death.
- The king was furious over these inhumanities, and wanted Hendon to
- break jail and fly with him to Westminster, so that he could mount his
- throne and hold out his scepter in mercy over these unfortunate people
- and save their lives. 'Poor child,' sighed Hendon, 'these woeful tales
- have brought his malady upon him again- alack, but for this evil
- hap, he would have been well in a little time.'
- Among these prisoners was an old lawyer- a man with a strong
- face and a dauntless mien, Three years past, he had written a pamphlet
- against the Lord Chancellor, accusing him of injustice, and had been
- punished for it by the loss of his ears in the pillory and degradation
- from the bar, and in addition had been fined L3,000 and sentenced to
- imprisonment for life. Lately he had repeated his offense; and in
- consequence was now under sentence to lose what remained of his
- ears, pay a fine of L5,000, be branded on both cheeks, and remain in
- prison for life.
- 'These be honorable scars,' he said, and turned back his gray hair
- and showed the mutilated stubs of what had once been his ears.
- The king's eye burned with passion. He said:
- 'None believe in me- neither wilt thou. But no matter- within
- the compass of a month thou shalt be free; and more, the laws that
- have dishonored thee, and shamed the English name, shall be swept from
- the statute-books. The world is made wrong, kings should go to
- school to their own laws at times, and so learn mercy.'*(20)
- CHAPTER XXVIII
- The Sacrifice
-
- MEANTIME Miles was growing sufficiently tired of confinment and
- inaction. But now his trial came on, to his great gratification, and
- he thought he could welcome any sentence provided a further
- imprisonment should not be a part of it. But he was mistaken about
- that. He was in a fine fury when he found himself described as a
- 'sturdy vagabond' and sentenced to sit two hours in the pillory for
- bearing that character and for assaulting the master of Hendon Hall.
- His pretensions as to brothership with his prosecutor, and rightful
- heirship to the Hendon honors and estates, were left contemptuously
- unnoticed, as being not even worth examination.
- He raged and threatened on his way to punishment, but it did no
- good; he was snatched roughly along by the officers, and got an
- occasional cuff, besides, for his unreverent conduct.
- The king could not pierce through the rabble that swarmed
- behind; so he was obliged to follow in the rear, remote from his
- good friend and servant. The king had been nearly condemned to the
- stocks himself, for being in such bad company, but had been let off
- with a lecture and a warning, in consideration of his youth. When
- the crowd at last halted, he flitted feverishly from point to point
- around its outer rim, hunting a place to get through; and at last,
- after a deal of difficulty and delay, succeeded. There sat his poor
- henchman in the degrading stocks, the sport and butt of a dirty mob-
- he, the body servant of the king of England! Edward had heard the
- sentence pronounced, but he had not realized the half that it meant.
- His anger began to rise as the sense of this new indignity which had
- been put upon him sank home; it jumped to summer heat the next moment,
- when he saw an egg sail through the air and crush itself against
- Hendon's cheek, and heard the crowd roar its enjoyment of the episode.
- He sprang across the open circle and confronted the officer in charge,
- crying:
- 'For shame! This is my servant- set him free! I am the-'
- 'Oh, peace!' exclaimed Hendon, in a panic, 'thou'lt destroy
- thyself. Mind him not, officer, he is mad.'
- 'Give thyself no trouble as to the matter of minding him, good
- man, I have small mind to mind him; but as to teaching him somewhat,
- to that I am well inclined.' He turned to a subordinate and said,
- 'Give the little fool a taste or two of the lash, to mend his
- manners.'
- 'Half a dozen will better serve his turn,' suggested Sir Hugh, who
- had ridden up a moment before to take a passing glance at the
- proceedings.
- The king was seized. He did not even struggle, so paralyzed was he
- with the mere thought of the monstrous outrage that was proposed to be
- inflicted upon his sacred person. History was already defiled with the
- record of the scourging of an English king with whips- it was an
- intolerable reflection that he must furnish a duplicate of that
- shameful page. He was in the toils, there was no help for him; he must
- either take this punishment or beg for its remission. Hard conditions;
- he would take the stripes- a king might do that, but a king could
- not beg.
- But meantime, Miles Hendon was resolving the difficulty. 'Let
- the child go,' said he; 'ye heartless dogs, do ye not see how young
- and frail he is? Let him go- I will take his lashes.'
- 'Marry, a good thought- and thanks for it,' said Sir Hugh, his
- face lighting with a sardonic satisfaction. 'Let the little beggar go,
- and give this fellow a dozen in his place- an honest dozen, well
- laid on.' The king was in the act of entering a fierce protest, but
- Sir Hugh silenced him with the potent remark, 'Yes, speak up, do,
- and free thy mind- only, mark ye, that for each word you utter he
- shall get six strokes the more.'
- Hendon was removed from the stocks, and his back laid bare; and
- while the lash was applied the poor little king turned away his face
- and allowed unroyal tears to channel his cheeks unchecked. 'Ah,
- brave good heart,' he said to himself, 'this loyal deed shall never
- perish out of my memory. I will not forget it- and neither shall
- they!' he added, with passion. While he mused, his appreciation of
- Hendon's magnanimous conduct grew to greater and still greater
- dimensions in his mind, and so also did his gratefulness for it.
- Presently he said to himself, 'Who saves his prince from wounds and
- possible death- and this he did for me- performs high service; but
- it is little- it is nothing! -oh, less than nothing!- when 'tis
- weighed against the act of him who saves his prince from SHAME!'
- Hendon made no outcry under the scourge, but bore the heavy
- blows with soldierly fortitude. This, together with his redeeming
- the boy by taking his stripes for him, compelled the respect of even
- that forlorn and degraded mob that was gathered there; and its gibes
- and hootings died away, and no sound remained but the sound of the
- falling blows. The stillness that pervaded the place when Hendon found
- himself once more in the stocks, was in strong contrast with the
- insulting clamour which had prevailed there so little a while before.
- The king came softly to Hendon's side, and whispered in his ear:
- 'Kings cannot ennoble thee, thou good, great soul, for One who
- is higher than kings hath done that for thee; but a king can confirm
- thy nobility to men.' He picked up the scourge from the ground,
- touched Hendon's bleeding shoulders lightly with it, and whispered,
- 'Edward of England dubs thee earl!'
- Hendon was touched. The water welled to his eyes, yet at the
- same time the grisly humor of the situation and circumstances so
- undermined his gravity that it was all he could do to keep some sign
- of his inward mirth from showing outside. To be suddenly hoisted,
- naked and gory, from the common stocks to the Alpine altitude and
- splendor of an earldom, seemed to him the last possibility in the line
- of the grotesque. He said to himself, 'Now am I finely tinseled,
- indeed! The specter-knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows is
- become a specter-earl!- a dizzy flight for a callow wing! An this go
- on, I shall presently be hung like a very May-pole with fantastic
- gauds and make-believe honors. But I shall value them, all valueless
- as they are, for the love that doth bestow them. Better these poor
- mock dignities of mine, that come unasked from a clean hand and a
- right spirit, than real ones bought by servility from grudging and
- interested power.'
- The dreaded Sir Hugh wheeled his horse about, and, as he spurred
- away, the living wall divided silently to let him pass, and as
- silently closed together again. And so remained; nobody went so far as
- to venture a remark in favor of the prisoner, or in compliment to him;
- but no matter, the absence of abuse was a sufficient homage in itself.
- A late comer who was not posted as to the present circumstances, and
- who delivered a sneer at the 'impostor' and was in the act of
- following it with a dead cat, was promptly knocked down and kicked
- out, without any words, and then the deep quiet resumed sway once
- more.
- CHAPTER XXIX
- To London
-
- WHEN Hendon's term of service in the stocks was finished, he was
- released and ordered to quit the region and come back no more. His
- sword was restored to him, and also his mule and his donkey. He
- mounted and rode off, followed by the king, the crowd opening with
- quiet respectfulness to let them pass, and then dispersing when they
- were gone.
- Hendon was soon absorbed in thought. There were questions of
- high import to be answered. What should he do? Whither should he go?
- Powerful help must be found somewhere, or he must relinquish his
- inheritance and remain under the imputation of being an impostor
- besides. Where could he hope to find this powerful help? Where,
- indeed! It was a knotty question. By and by a thought occurred to
- him which pointed to a possibility- the slenderest of slender
- possibilities, certainly, but still worth considering, for lack of any
- other that promised anything at all. He remembered what old Andrews
- had said about the young king's goodness and his generous championship
- of the wronged and unfortunate. Why not go and try to get speech of
- him and beg for justice? Ah, yes, but could so fantastic a pauper
- get admission to the august presence of a monarch? Never mind- let
- that matter take care of itself; it was a bridge that would not need
- to be crossed till he should come to it. He was an old campaigner, and
- used to inventing shifts and expedients; no doubt he would be able
- to find a way. Yes, he would strike for the capital. Maybe his
- father's old friend, Sir Humphrey Marlow, would help him- 'good old
- Sir Humphrey, Head Lieutenant of the late king's kitchen, or
- stables, or something'- Miles could not remember just what or which.
- Now that he had something to turn his energies to, a distinctly
- defined object to accomplish, the fog of humiliation and depression
- that had settled down upon his spirits lifted and blew away, and he
- raised his head and looked about him. He was surprised to see how
- far he had come; the village was away behind him. The king was jogging
- along in his wake, with his head bowed; for he, too, was deep in plans
- and thinkings. A sorrowful misgiving clouded Hendon's newborn
- cheerfulness; would the boy be willing to go again to a city where,
- during all his brief life, he had never known anything but ill usage
- and pinching want? But the question must be asked; it could not be
- avoided; so Hendon reined up, and called out:
- 'I had forgotten to inquire whither we are bound. Thy commands, my
- liege?'
- 'To London!'
- Hendon moved on again, mightily contented with the answer- but
- astonished at it, too.
- The whole journey was made without an adventure of importance.
- But it ended with one. About ten o'clock on the night of the night
- of the 19th of February, they stepped upon London Bridge, in the midst
- of a writhing, struggling jam of howling and hurrahing people, whose
- beer-jolly faces stood out strongly in the glare from manifold
- torches- and at that instant the decaying head of some former duke
- or other grandee tumbled down between them, striking Hendon on the
- elbow and then bounding off among the hurrying confusion of feet. So
- evanescent and unstable are men's works in this world!- the late
- good king is but three weeks dead and three days in his grave, and
- already the adornments which he took such pains to select from
- prominent people for his noble bridge are falling. A citizen
- stumbled over that head, and drove his own head into the back of
- somebody in front of him, who turned and knocked down the first person
- that came handy, and was promptly laid out himself by that person's
- friend. It was the right ripe time for a free fight, for the
- festivities of the morrow- Coronation Day- were already beginning;
- everybody was full of strong drink and patriotism; within five minutes
- the free fight was occupying a good deal of ground; within ten or
- twelve it covered an acre or so, and was become a riot. By this time
- Hendon and the king were hopelessly separated from each other and lost
- in the rush and turmoil of the roaring masses of humanity. And so we
- leave them.
- CHAPTER XXX
- Tom's Progress
-
- WHILST the true king wandered about the land, poorly clad,
- poorly fed, cuffed and derided by tramps one while, herding with
- thieves and murderers in a jail another, and called idiot and impostor
- by all impartially, the mock King Tom Canty enjoyed a quite
- different experience.
- When we saw him last, royalty was just beginning to have a
- bright side for him. This bright side went on brightening more and
- more every day; in a very little while it was become almost all
- sunshine and delightfulness. He lost his fears; his misgivings faded
- out and died; his embarrassments departed, and gave place to an easy
- and confident bearing. He worked the whipping-boy mine to
- ever-increasing profit.
- He ordered my Lady Elizabeth and my Lady Jane Grey into his
- presence when he wanted to play or talk, and dismissed them when he
- was done with them, with the air of one familiarly accustomed to
- such performances. It no longer confused him to have these lofty
- personages kiss his hand at parting.
- He came to enjoy being conducted to bed in state at night, and
- dressed with intricate and solemn ceremony in the morning. It came
- to be a proud pleasure to march to dinner attended by a glittering
- procession of officers of state and gentlemen-at-arms; insomuch,
- indeed, that he doubled his guard of gentlemen-at-arms, and made
- them a hundred. He liked to hear the bugles sounding down the long
- corridors, and the distant voices responding, 'Way for the King!'
- He even learned to enjoy sitting in throned state in council,
- and seeming to be something more than the Lord Protector's mouthpiece.
- He liked to receive great ambassadors and their gorgeous trains, and
- listen to the affectionate messages they brought from illustrious
- monarchs who called him 'brother.' Oh, happy Tom Canty, late of
- Offal Court!
- He enjoyed his splendid clothes, and ordered more; he found his
- four hundred servants too few for his proper grandeur, and trebled
- them. The adulation of salaaming courtiers came to be sweet music to
- his ears. He remained kind and gentle, and a sturdy and determined
- champion of all that were oppressed, and he made tireless war upon
- unjust laws; yet upon occasion, being offended, he could turn upon
- an earl, or even a duke, and give him a look that would make him
- tremble. Once, when his royal 'sister,' the grimly holy Lady Mary, set
- herself to reason with him against the wisdom of his course in
- pardoning so many people who would otherwise be jailed, or hanged,
- or burned, and reminded him that their august late father's prisons
- had sometimes contained as high as sixty thousand convicts at one
- time, and that during his admirable reign he had delivered seventy-two
- thousand thieves and robbers over to death by the executioner,*(21)
- the boy was filled with generous indignation, and commanded her to
- go to her closet, and beseech God to take away the stone that was in
- her breast, and give her a human heart.
- Did Tom Canty never feel troubled about the poor little rightful
- prince who had treated him so kindly, and flown out with such hot zeal
- to avenge him upon the insolent sentinel at the palace gate? Yes;
- his first royal days and nights were pretty well sprinkled with
- painful thoughts about the lost prince, and with sincere longings
- for his return and happy restoration to his native rights and
- splendors. But as time wore on, and the prince did not come, Tom's
- mind became more and more occupied with his new and enchanting
- experiences, and by little and little the vanished monarch faded
- almost out of his thoughts; and finally, when he did intrude upon them
- at intervals, he was become an unwelcome specter, for he made Tom feel
- guilty and ashamed.
- Tom's poor mother and sisters traveled the same road out of his
- mind. At first he pined for them, sorrowed for them, longed to see
- them; but later, the thought of their coming some day in their rags
- and dirt, and betraying him with their kisses, and pulling him down
- from his lofty place and dragging him back to penury and degradation
- and the slums, made him shudder. At last they ceased to trouble his
- thoughts almost wholly. And he was content, even glad; for, whenever
- their mournful and accusing faces did rise before him now, they made
- him feel more despicable than the worms that crawl.
- At midnight of the 19th of February, Tom Canty was sinking to
- sleep in his rich bed in the palace, guarded by his loyal vassals, and
- surrounded by the pomps of royalty, a happy boy; for to-morrow was the
- day appointed for his solemn crowning as king of England. At that same
- hour, Edward, the true king, hungry and thirsty, soiled and
- draggled, worn with travel, and clothed in rags and shreds- his
- share of the results of the riot- was wedged in among a crowd of
- people who were watching with deep interest certain hurrying gangs
- of workmen who streamed in and out of Westminster Abbey, busy as ants;
- they were making the last preparation for the royal coronation.
- CHAPTER XXXI
- The Recognition Procession
-
- WHEN Tom Canty awoke the next morning, the air was heavy with a
- thunderous murmur; all the distances were charged with it. It was
- music to him; for it meant that the English world was out in its
- strength to give loyal welcome to the great day.
- Presently Tom found himself once more the chief figure in a
- wonderful floating pageant on the Thames; for by ancient custom the
- 'recognition procession' through London must start from the Tower, and
- he was bound thither.
- When he arrived there, the sides of the venerable fortress
- seemed suddenly rent in a thousand places, and from every rent
- leaped a red tongue of flame and a white gush of smoke; a deafening
- explosion followed, which drowned the shoutings of the multitude,
- and made the ground tremble; the flame-jets, the smoke, and the
- explosions were repeated over and over again with marvelous
- celerity, so that in a few moments the old Tower disappeared in the
- vast fog of its own smoke, all but the very top of the tall pile
- called the White Tower; this, with its banners, stood out above the
- dense bank of vapor as a mountain peak projects above a cloud-rack.
- Tom Canty, splendidly arrayed, mounted a prancing war-steed, whose
- rich trappings almost reached to the ground; his 'uncle,' the Lord
- Protector Somerset, similarly mounted, took place in his rear; the
- King's Guard formed in single ranks on either side, clad in
- burnished armor; after the Protector followed a seemingly interminable
- procession of resplendent nobles attended by their vassals; after
- these came the lord mayor and the aldermanic body, in crimson velvet
- robes, and with their gold chains across their breasts; and after
- these the officers and members of all the guilds of London, in rich
- raiment, and bearing the showy banners of the several corporations.
- Also in the procession, as a special guard of honor through the
- city, was the Ancient and Honorable Artillery Company- an organization
- already three hundred years old at that time, and the only military
- body in England possessing the privilege (which it still possesses
- in our day) of holding itself independent of the commands of
- Parliament. It was a brilliant spectacle, and was hailed with
- acclamations all along the line, as it took its stately way through
- the packed multitudes of citizens. The chronicler says, 'The king,
- as he entered the city, was received by the people with prayers,
- welcomings, cries, and tender words, and all signs which argue an
- earnest love of subjects toward their sovereign; and the king, by
- holding up his glad countenance to such as stood afar off, and most
- tender language to those that stood nigh his Grace, showed himself
- no less thankful to receive the people's good will than they to
- offer it. To all that wished him well, he gave thanks. To such as bade
- "God save his Grace," he said in return, "God save you all!" and added
- that "he thanked them with all his heart." Wonderfully transported
- were the people with the loving answers and gestures of their king.'
- In Fenchurch Street a 'fair child, in costly apparel,' stood on
- a stage to welcome his majesty to the city. The last verse of his
- greeting was in these words:
-
- Welcome, O King! as much as hearts can think;
- Welcome again, as much as tongue can tell-
- Welcome to joyous tongues, and hearts that will not shrink;
- God thee preserve, we pray, and wish thee ever well.
-
- The people burst forth in a glad shout, repeating with one voice
- what the child had said. Tom Canty gazed abroad over the surging sea
- of eager faces, and his heart swelled with exultation; and he felt
- that the one thing worth living for in this world was to be a king,
- and a nation's idol. Presently he caught sight, at a distance, of a
- couple of his ragged Offal Court comrades- one of them the lord high
- admiral in his late mimic court, the other the first lord of the
- bedchamber in the same pretentious fiction; and his pride swelled
- higher than ever. Oh, if they could only recognize him now! What
- unspeakable glory it would be, if they could recognize him, and
- realize that the derided mock king of the slums and back alleys was
- become a real king, with illustrious dukes and princes for his
- humble menials, and the English world at his feet! But he had to
- deny himself, and choke down his desire, for such a recognition
- might cost more than it would come to; so he turned away his head, and
- left the two soiled lads to go on with their shoutings and glad
- adulations, unsuspicious of whom it was they were lavishing them upon.
- Every now and then rose the cry, 'A largess! a largess!' and Tom
- responded by scattering a handful of bright new coins abroad for the
- multitude to scramble for.
- The chronicler says, 'At the upper end of Gracechurch Street,
- before the sign of the Eagle, the city had erected a gorgeous arch,
- beneath which was a stage, which stretched from one side of the street
- to the other. This was a historical pageant, representing the king's
- immediate progenitors. There sat Elizabeth of York in the midst of
- an immense white rose, whose petals formed elaborate furbelows
- around her; by her side was Henry VII, issuing out of a vast red rose,
- disposed in the same manner; the hands of the royal pair were locked
- together, and the wedding-ring ostentatiously displayed. From the
- red and white roses proceeded a stem, which reached up to a second
- stage, occupied by Henry VIII, issuing from a red-and-white rose, with
- the effigy of the new king's mother, Jane Seymour, represented by
- his side. One branch sprang from this pair, which mounted to a third
- stage, where sat the effigy of Edward VI himself, enthroned in royal
- majesty; and the whole pageant was framed with wreaths of roses, red
- and white.'
- This quaint and gaudy spectacle so wrought upon the rejoicing
- people, that their acclamations utterly smothered the small voice of
- the child whose business it was to explain the thing in eulogistic
- rhymes. But Tom Canty was not sorry; for this loyal uproar was sweeter
- music to him than any poetry, no matter what its quality might be.
- Whithersoever Tom turned his happy young face, the people recognized
- the exactness of his effigy's likeness to himself, the flesh-and-blood
- counterpart; and new whirlwinds of applause burst forth.
- The great pageant moved on, and still on, under one triumphal arch
- after another, and past a bewildering succession of spectacular and
- symbolical tableaux, each of which typified and exalted some virtue,
- or talent, or merit, of the little king's. 'Throughout the whole of
- Cheapside, from every penthouse and window, hung banners and
- streamers; and the richest carpets, stuffs, and cloth-of-gold
- tapestried the streets- specimens of the great wealth of the stores
- within; and the splendor of this thoroughfare was equaled in the other
- streets, and in some even surpassed.'
- 'And all these wonders and these marvels are to welcome me- me!'
- murmured Tom Canty.
- The mock king's cheeks were flushed with excitement, his eyes were
- flashing, his senses swam in a delirium of pleasure. At this point,
- just as he was raising his hand to fling another rich largess, he
- caught sight of a pale, astounded face which was strained forward
- out of the second rank of the crowd, its intense eyes riveted upon
- him, A sickening consternation struck through him; he recognized his
- mother! and up flew his hand, palm outward, before his eyes- that
- old involuntary gesture, born of a forgotten episode, and
- perpetuated by habit. In an instant more she had torn her way out of
- the press, and past the guards, and was at his side. She embraced
- his leg, she covered it with kisses, she cried, 'O, my child, my
- darling!' lifting toward him a face that was transfigured with joy and
- love. The same instant an officer of the King's Guard snatched her
- away with a curse, and sent her reeling back whence she came with a
- vigorous impulse from his strong arm. The words 'I do not know you,
- woman!' were falling from Tom Canty's lips when this piteous thing
- occurred; but it smote him to the heart to see her treated so; and
- as she turned for a last glimpse of him, whilst the crowd was
- swallowing her from his sight, she seemed so wounded, so
- broken-hearted, that a shame fell upon him which consumed his pride to
- ashes, and withered his stolen royalty. His grandeurs were stricken
- valueless; they seemed to fall away from him like rotten rags.
- The procession moved on, and still on, through ever-augmenting
- splendors and ever-augmenting tempests of welcome; but to Tom Canty
- they were as if they had not been. He neither saw nor heard. Royalty
- had lost its grace and sweetness; its pomps were become a reproach.
- Remorse was eating his heart out. He said, 'Would God I were free of
- my captivity!'
- He had unconsciously dropped back into the phraseology of the
- first days of his compulsory greatness.
- The shining pageant still went winding like a radiant and
- interminable serpent down the crooked lanes of the quaint old city,
- and through the huzzaing hosts; but still the king rode with bowed
- head and vacant eyes, seeing only his mother's face and that wounded
- look in it.
- 'Largess, largess!' The cry fell upon an unheeding ear.
- 'Long live Edward of England!' It seemed as if the earth shook
- with the explosion; but there was no response from the king. He
- heard it only as one hears the thunder of the surf when it is blown to
- the ear out of a great distance, for it was smothered under another
- sound which was still nearer, in his own breast, in his accusing
- conscience- a voice which kept repeating those shameful words, 'I do
- not know you, woman!'
- The words smote upon the king's soul as the strokes of a funeral
- bell smite upon the soul of a surviving friend when they remind him of
- secret treacheries suffered at his hands by him that is gone.
- New glories were unfolded at every turning; new wonders, new
- marvels, sprung into view; the pent clamors of waiting batteries
- were released; new raptures poured from the throats of the waiting
- multitudes; but the king gave no sign, and the accusing voice that
- went moaning through his comfortless breast was all the sound he
- heard.
- By and by the gladness in the faces of the populace changed a
- little, and became touched with a something like solicitude or
- anxiety; an abatement in the volume of applause was observable too.
- The Lord Protector was quick to notice these things; he was as quick
- to detect the cause. He spurred to the king's side, bent low in his
- saddle, uncovered, and said:
- 'My liege, it is an ill time for dreaming. The people observe
- thy downcast head, thy clouded mien, and they take it for an omen.
- Be advised; unveil the sun of royalty, and let it shine upon these
- boding vapors, and disperse them. Lift up thy face, and smile upon the
- people.'
- So saying, the duke scattered a handful of coins to right and
- left, then retired to his place. The mock king did mechanically as
- he had been bidden. His smile had no heart in it, but few eyes were
- near enough or sharp enough to detect that. The noddings of his plumed
- head as he saluted his subjects were full of grace and graciousness;
- the largess which he delivered from his hand was royally liberal; so
- the people's anxiety vanished, and the acclamations burst forth
- again in as mighty a volume as before.
- Still once more, a little before the progress was ended, the
- duke was obliged to ride forward, and make remonstrance. He whispered:
- 'O dread sovereign! shake off these fatal humors; the eyes of
- the world are upon thee.' Then he added with sharp annoyance,
- 'Perdition catch that crazy pauper! 'twas she that hath disturbed your
- Highness.'
- The gorgeous figure turned a lusterless eye upon the duke, and
- said in a dead voice:
- 'She was my mother!'
- 'My God!' groaned the Protector as he reined his horse backward to
- his post, 'the omen was pregnant with prophecy. He is gone mad again!'
- CHAPTER XXXII
- Coronation Day
-
- LET us go backward a few hours, and place ourselves in Westminster
- Abbey, at four o'clock in the morning of this memorable Coronation
- Day. We are not without company; for although it is still night, we
- find the torch-lighted galleries already filling up with people who
- are well content to sit still and wait seven or eight hours till the
- time shall come for them to see what they may not hope to see twice in
- their lives- the coronation of a king. Yes, London and Westminster
- have been astir ever since the warning guns boomed at three o'clock,
- and already crowds of untitled rich folk who have bought the privilege
- of trying to find sitting-room in the galleries are flocking in at the
- entrances reserved for their sort.
- The hours drag along, tediously enough. All stir has ceased for
- some time, for every gallery has long ago been packed. We may sit now,
- and look and think at our leisure. We have glimpses here and there and
- yonder, through the dim cathedral twilight, of portions of many
- galleries and balconies, wedged full with people, the other portions
- of these galleries and balconies being cut off from sight by
- intervening pillars and architectural projections. We have in view the
- whole of the great north transept- empty, and waiting for England's
- privileged ones. We see also the ample area or platform, carpeted with
- rich stuffs, whereon the throne stands. The throne occupies the center
- of the platform, and is raised above it upon an elevation of four
- steps. Within the seat of the throne is inclosed a rough flat rock-
- the Stone of Scone- which many generations of Scottish kings sat on to
- be crowned, and so it in time became holy enough to answer a like
- purpose for English monarchs. Both the throne and its footstool are
- covered with cloth-of-gold.
- Stillness reigns, the torches blink dully, the time drags heavily.
- But at last the lagging daylight asserts itself, the torches are
- extinguished, and a mellow radiance suffuses the great spaces. All
- features of the noble building are distinct now, but soft and
- dreamy, for the sun is lightly veiled with clouds.
- At seven o'clock the first break in the drowsy monotony occurs;
- for on the stroke of this hour the first peeress enters the
- transept, clothed like Solomon for splendor, and is conducted to her
- appointed place by an official clad in satins and velvets, whilst a
- duplicate of him gathers up the lady's long train, follows after, and,
- when the lady is seated, arranges the train across her lap for her. He
- then places her footstool according to her desire, after which he puts
- her coronet where it will be convenient to her hand when the time
- for the simultaneous coroneting of the nobles shall arrive.
- By this time the peeresses are flowing in in a glittering
- stream, and satin-clad officials are flitting and glinting everywhere,
- seating them and making them comfortable. The scene is animated enough
- now. There is stir and life, and shifting color everywhere. After a
- time, quiet reigns again; for the peeresses are all come, and are
- all in their places- a solid acre, or such a matter, of human flowers,
- resplendent in variegated colors, and frosted like a Milky Way with
- diamonds. There are all ages here: brown, wrinkled, white-haired
- dowagers who are able to go back, and still back, down the stream of
- time, and recall the crowning of Richard III and the troublous days of
- that old forgotten age; and there are handsome middle-aged dames;
- and lovely and gracious young matrons; and gentle and beautiful
- young girls, with beaming eyes and fresh complexions, who may possibly
- put on their jeweled coronets awkwardly when the great time comes; for
- the matter will be new to them, and their excitement will be a sore
- hindrance. Still, this may not happen, for the hair of all these
- ladies has been arranged with a special view to the swift and
- successful lodging of the crown in its place when the signal comes.
- We have seen that this massed array of peeresses is sown thick
- with diamonds, and we also see that it is a marvelous spectacle- but
- now we are about to be astonished in earnest. About nine, the clouds
- suddenly break away and a shaft of sunshine cleaves the mellow
- atmosphere, and drifts slowly along the ranks of ladies; and every
- rank it touches flames into a dazzling splendor of many-colored fires,
- and we tingle to our finger-tips with the electric thrill that is shot
- through us by the surprise and the beauty of the spectacle!
- Presently a special envoy from some distant corner of the Orient,
- marching with the general body of foreign ambassadors, crosses this
- bar of sunshine, and we catch our breath, the glory that streams and
- flashes and palpitates about him is so overpowering; for he is crusted
- from head to heels with gems, and his slightest movement showers a
- dancing radiance all around him.
- Let us change the tense for convenience. The time drifted along-
- one hour- two hours- two hours and a half; then the deep booming of
- artillery told that the king and his grand procession had arrived at
- last; so the waiting multitude rejoiced. All knew that a further delay
- must follow, for the king must be prepared and robed for the solemn
- ceremony; but this delay would be pleasantly occupied by the
- assembling of the peers of the realm in their stately robes. These
- were conducted ceremoniously to their seats, and their coronets placed
- conveniently at hand; and meanwhile the multitude in the galleries
- were alive with interest, for most of them were beholding for the
- first time, dukes, earls, and barons, whose names had been
- historical for five hundred years. When all were finally seated, the
- spectacle from the galleries and all coigns of vantage was complete; a
- gorgeous one to look upon and to remember.
- Now the robed and mitered great heads of the church, and their
- attendants, filed in upon the platform and took their appointed
- places; these were followed by the Lord Protector and other great
- officials, and these again by a steel-clad detachment of the Guard.
- There was a waiting pause; then, at a signal, a triumphant peal of
- music burst forth, and Tom Canty, dothed in a long robe of
- cloth-of-gold, appeared at a door, and stepped upon the platform.
- The entire multitude rose, and the ceremony of the Recognition ensued.
- Then a noble anthem swept the Abbey with its rich waves of
- sound; and thus heralded and welcomed, Tom Canty was conducted to
- the throne. The ancient ceremonies went on with impressive
- solemnity, whilst the audience gazed; and as they drew nearer and
- nearer to completion, Tom Canty grew pale, and still paler, and a deep
- and steadily deepening woe and despondency settled down upon his
- spirits and upon his remorseful heart.
- At last the final act was at hand. The Archbishop of Canterbury
- lifted up the crown of England from its cushion and held it out over
- the trembling mock king's head. In the same instant a rainbow radiance
- flashed along the spacious transept; for with one impulse every
- individual in the great concourse of nobles lifted a coronet and
- poised it over his or her head- and paused in that attitude.
- A deep hush pervaded the Abbey. At this impressive moment, a
- startling apparition intruded upon the scene- an apparition observed
- by none in the absorbed multitude, until it suddenly appeared,
- moving up the great central aisle. It was a boy, bareheaded, ill shod,
- and clothed in coarse plebeian garments that were falling to rags.
- He raised his hand with a solemnity which ill comported with his
- soiled and sorry aspect, and delivered this note of warning:
- 'I forbid you to set the crown of England upon that forfeited
- head. I am the king!'
- In an instant several indignant hands were laid upon the boy;
- but in the same instant Tom Canty, in his regal vestments, made a
- swift step forward and cried out in a ringing voice:
- 'Loose him and forbear! He is the king!'
- A sort of panic of astonishment swept the assemblage, and they
- partly rose in their places and stared in a bewildered way at one
- another and at the chief figures in this scene, like persons who
- wondered whether they were awake and in their senses, or asleep and
- dreaming. The Lord Protector was as amazed as the rest, but quickly
- recovered himself and exclaimed in a voice of authority:
- 'Mind not his Majesty, his malady is upon him again- seize the
- vagabond!'
- He would have been obeyed, but the mock king stamped his foot
- and cried out:
- 'On your peril! Touch him not, he is the king!'
- The hands were withheld; a paralysis fell upon the house, no one
- moved, no one spoke; indeed, no one knew how to act or what to say, in
- so strange and surprising an emergency. While all minds were
- struggling to right themselves, the boy still moved steadily
- forward, with high port and confident mien; he had never halted from
- the beginning; and while the tangled minds still floundered
- helplessly, he stepped upon the platform, and the mock king ran with a
- glad face to meet him; and fell on his knees before him and said:
- 'Oh, my lord the king, let poor Tom Canty be first to swear fealty
- to thee, and say " Put on thy crown and enter into thine own again!"'
- The Lord Protector's eye fell sternly upon the new-comer's face;
- but straightway the sternness vanished away, and gave place to an
- expression of wondering surprise. This thing happened also to the
- other great officers. They glanced at each other, and retreated a step
- by a common and unconscious impulse. The thought in each mind was
- the same: 'What a strange resemblance!'
- The Lord Protector reflected a moment or two in perplexity, then
- he said, with grave respectfulness:
- 'By your favor, sir, I desire to ask certain questions which-'
- 'I will answer them, my lord.'
- The duke asked him many questions about the court, the late
- king, the prince, the princesses. The boy answered them correctly
- and without hesitating. He described the rooms of state in the palace,
- the late king's apartments, and those of the Prince of Wales.
- It was strange; it was wonderful; yes, it was unaccountable- so
- all said that heard it. The tide was beginning to turn, and Tom
- Canty's hopes to run high, when the Lord Protector shook his head
- and said:
- 'It is true it is most wonderful- but it is no more than our
- lord the king likewise can do.' This remark, and this reference to
- himself, as still the king, saddened Tom Canty, and he felt his
- hopes crumbling from under him.
- 'These are not proofs,' added the Protector.
- The tide was turning very fast now, very fast, indeed- but in
- the wrong direction; it was leaving poor Tom Canty stranded on the
- throne, and sweeping the other out to sea. The Lord Protector communed
- with himself- shook his head- the thought forced itself upon him,
- 'It is perilous to the state and to us all, to entertain so fateful
- a riddle as this; it could divide the nation and undermine the
- throne.' He turned and said,
- 'Sir Thomas, arrest this- No, hold!' His face lighted, and he
- confronted the ragged candidate with this question:
- 'Where lieth the Great Seal? Answer me this truly, and the
- riddle is unriddled; for only he that was Prince of Wales can so
- answer! On so trivial a thing hang a throne and a dynasty!'
- It was a lucky thought, a happy thought. That it was so considered
- by the great officials was manifested by the silent applause that shot
- from eye to eye around their circle in the form of bright approving
- glances. Yes, none but the true prince could dissolve the stubborn
- mystery of the vanished Great Seal- this forlorn little impostor had
- been taught his lesson well, but here his teachings must fail, for his
- teacher himself could not answer that question- ah, very good, very
- good indeed; now we shall be rid of this troublesome and perilous
- business in short order! And so they nodded invisibly and smiled
- inwardly with satisfaction, and looked to see this foolish lad
- stricken with a palsy of guilty confusion. How surprised they were,
- then, to see nothing of the sort happen- how they marveled to hear him
- answer up promptly, in a confident and untroubled voice, and say:
- 'There is naught in this riddle that is difficult.' Then,
- without so much as a by-your-leave to anybody, he turned and gave this
- command, with the easy manner of one accustomed to doing such
- things: 'My Lord St. John, go you to my private cabinet in the palace-
- for none knoweth the place better than you- and, close down to the
- floor, in the left corner remotest from the door that opens from the
- antechamber, you shall find in the wall a brazen nail-head; press upon
- it and a little jewel closet will fly open which not even you do
- know of- no, nor any soul else in all the world but me and the
- trusty artisan that did contrive it for me. The first thing that
- falleth under your eye will be the Great Seal- fetch it hither.'
- All the company wondered at this speech, and wondered still more
- to see the little mendicant pick out this peer without hesitancy or
- apparent fear of mistake, and call him by name with such a placidly
- convincing air of having known him all his life. The peer was almost
- surprised into obeying. He even made a movement as if to go, but
- quickly recovered his tranquil attitude and confessed his blunder with
- a blush. Tom Canty turned upon him and said, sharply:
- 'Why dost thou hesitate? Hast not heard the king's command? Go!'
- The Lord St. John made a deep obeisance- and it was observed
- that it was a significantly cautious and non-committal one, it not
- being delivered at either of the kings, but at the neutral ground
- about half-way between the two- and took his leave.
- Now began a movement of the gorgeous particles of that official
- group which was slow, scarcely perceptible, and yet steady and
- persistent- a movement such as is observed in a kaleidoscope that is
- turned slowly, whereby the components of one splendid cluster fall
- away and join themselves to another- a movement which, little by
- little, in the present case, dissolved the glittering crowd that stood
- about Tom Canty and clustered it together again in the neighborhood of
- the new-comer. Tom Canty stood almost alone. Now ensued a brief season
- of deep suspense and waiting- during which even the few faint-hearts
- still remaining near Tom Canty gradually scraped together courage
- enough to glide, one by one, over to the majority. So at last Tom
- Canty, in his royal robes and jewels, stood wholly alone and
- isolated from the world, a conspicuous figure, occupying an eloquent
- vacancy.
- Now the Lord St. John was seen returning. As he advanced up the
- mid-aisle the interest was so intense that the low murmur of
- conversation in the great assemblage died out and was succeeded by a
- profound hush, a breathless stillness, through which his footfalls
- pulsed with a dull and distant sound. Every eye was fastened upon
- him as he moved along. He reached the platform, paused a moment,
- then moved toward Tom Canty with a deep obeisance, and said:
- 'Sire, the Seal is not there!'
- A mob does not melt away from the presence of a plague-patient
- with more haste than the band of pallid and terrified courtiers melted
- away from the presence of the shabby little claimant of the Crown.
- In a moment he stood all alone, without a friend or supporter, a
- target upon which was concentrated a bitter fire of scornful and angry
- looks. The Lord Protector called out fiercely:
- 'Cast the beggar into the street, and scourge him through the
- town- the paltry knave is worth no more consideration!'
- Officers of the guard sprang forward to obey, but Tom Canty
- waved them off and said:
- 'Back! Whoso touches him perils his life!'
- The Lord Protector was perplexed in the last degree. He said to
- the Lord St. John:
- 'Searched you well?- but it boots not to ask that. It doth seem
- passing strange. Little things, trifles, slip out of one's ken, and
- one does not think it matter for surprise; but how a so bulky thing as
- the Seal of England can vanish away and no man be able to get track of
- it again- a massy golden disk-'
- Tom Canty, with beaming eyes, sprang forward and shouted:
- 'Hold, that is enough! Was it round?- and thick?- and had it
- letters and devices graved upon it?- Yes? Oh, now I know what this
- Great Seal is that there's been such worry and pother about! An ye had
- described it to me, ye could have had it three weeks ago. Right well I
- know where it lies; but it was not I that put it there- first.'
- 'Who, then, my liege?' asked the Lord Protector.
- 'He that stands there- the rightful king of England. And he
- shall tell you himself where it lies- then you will believe he knew it
- of his own knowledge. Bethink thee, my king- spur thy memory- it was
- the last, the very last thing thou didst that day before thou didst
- rush forth from the palace, clothed in my rags, to punish the
- soldier that insulted me.'
- A silence ensued, undisturbed by a movement or a whisper, and
- all eyes were fixed upon the new-comer, who stood, with bent head
- and corrugated brow, groping in his memory among a thronging multitude
- of valueless recollections for one single little elusive fact, which
- found, would seat him upon a throne- unfound, would leave him as he
- was, for good and all- a pauper and an outcast. Moment after moment
- passed- the moments built themselves into minutes- still the boy
- struggled silently on, and gave no sign. But at last he heaved a sigh,
- shook his head slowly, and said, with a trembling lip and in a
- despondent voice:
- 'I call the scene back- all of it- but the Seal hath no place in
- it.' He paused, then looked up, and said with gentle dignity, 'My
- lords and gentlemen, if ye will rob your rightful sovereign of his own
- for lack of this evidence which he is not able to furnish, I may not
- stay ye, being powerless. But-'
- 'O folly, O madness, my king!' cried Tom Canty, in a panic,
- 'wait!- think! Do not give up!- the cause is not lost! Nor shall be,
- neither! List to what I say- follow every word- I am going to bring
- that morning back again, every hap just as it happened. We talked- I
- told you of my sisters, Nan and Bet- ah, yes, you remember that; and
- about mine old grandam- and the rough games of the lads of Offal
- Court- yes, you remember these things also; very well, follow me
- still, you shall recall everything. You gave me food and drink, and
- did with princely courtesy send away the servants, so that my low
- breeding might not shame me before them- ah, yes, this also you
- remember.'
- As Tom checked off his details, and the other boy nodded his
- head in recognition of them, the great audience and the officials
- stared in puzzled wonderment; the tale sounded like true history,
- yet how could this impossible conjunction between a prince and a
- beggar boy have come about? Never was a company of people so
- perplexed, so interested, and so stupefied, before.
- 'For a jest, my prince, we did exchange garments. Then we stood
- before a mirror; and so alike were we that both said it seemed as if
- there had been no change made- yes, you remember that. Then you
- noticed that the soldier had hurt my hand- look! here it is, I
- cannot yet even write with it, the fingers are so stiff. At this
- your Highness sprang up, vowing vengeance upon that soldier, and ran
- toward the door- you passed a table- that thing you call the Seal
- lay on that table- you snatched it up and looked eagerly about, as
- if for a place to hide it- your eye caught sight of-'
- 'There, 'tis sufficient!- and the dear God be thanked!'
- exclaimed the ragged claimant, in a mighty excitement. 'Go, my good
- St. John- in an arm-piece of the Milanese armor that hangs on the
- wall, thou'lt find the Seal!'
- 'Right, my king! right!' cried Tom Canty; 'now the scepter of
- England is thine own; and it were better for him that would dispute it
- that he had been born dumb! Go, my Lord St. John, give thy feet
- wings!'
- The whole assemblage was on its feet now, and well-nigh out of its
- mind with uneasiness, apprehension, and consuming excitement. On the
- floor and on the platform a deafening buzz of frantic conversation
- burst forth, and for some time nobody knew anything or heard
- anything or was interested in anything but what his neighbor was
- shouting into his ear, or he was shouting into his neighbor's ear.
- Time- nobody knew how much of it- swept by unheeded and unnoted. At
- last a sudden hush fell upon the house, and in the same moment St.
- John appeared upon the platform and held the Great Seal aloft in his
- hand. Then such a shout went up!
- 'Long live the true king!'
- For five minutes the air quaked with shouts and the crash of
- musical instruments, and was white with a storm of waving
- handkerchiefs; and through it all a ragged lad, the most conspicuous
- figure in England, stood, flushed and happy and proud, in the center
- of the spacious platform, with the great vassals of the kingdom
- kneeling around him.
- Then all rose, and Tom Canty cried out:
- 'Now, O my king, take these regal garments back, and give poor
- Tom, thy servant, his shreds and remnants again.'
- The Lord Protector spoke up:
- 'Let the small varlet be stripped and flung into the Tower.'
- But the new king, the true king, said:
- 'I will not have it so. But for him I had not got my crown
- again- none shall lay a hand upon him to harm him. And as for thee, my
- good uncle, my Lord Protector, this conduct of thine is not grateful
- toward this poor lad, for I hear he hath made thee a duke'- the
- Protector blushed-' yet he was not a king; wherefore, what is thy fine
- title worth now? To-morrow you shall sue to me, through him, for its
- confirmation, else no duke, but a simple earl, shalt thou remain.'
- Under this rebuke, his grace the Duke of Somerset retired a
- little from the front for the moment. The king turned to Tom, and
- said, kindly:
- 'My poor boy, how was it that you could remember where I hid the
- Seal when I could not remember it myself?'
- 'Ah, my king, that was easy, since I used it divers days.'
- 'Used it- yet could not explain where it was?'
- 'I did not know it was that they wanted. They did not describe it,
- your majesty.'
- 'Then how used you it?'
- The red blood began to steal up into Tom's cheeks, and he
- dropped his eyes and was silent.
- 'Speak up, good lad, and fear nothing,' said the king. 'How used
- you the Great Seal of England?'
- Tom stammered a moment, in a pathetic confusion, then got it out:
- 'To crack nuts with!'
- Poor child, the avalanche of laughter that greeted this, nearly
- swept him off his feet. But if a doubt remained in any mind that Tom
- Canty was not the king of England and familiar with the august
- appurtenances of royalty, this reply disposed of it utterly.
- Meantime the sumptuous robe of state had been removed from Tom's
- shoulders to the king's, whose rags were effectively hidden from sight
- under it. Then the coronation ceremonies were resumed; the true king
- was anointed and the crown set upon his head, whilst cannon
- thundered the news to the city, and all London seemed to rock with
- applause.
- CHAPTER XXXIII
- Edward as King
-
- MILES HENDON was picturesque enough before he got into the riot on
- London Bridge- he was more so when he got out of it. He had but little
- money when he got in, none at all when he got out. The pickpockets had
- stripped him of his last farthing.
- But no matter, so he found his boy. Being a soldier, he did not go
- at his task in a random way, but set to work, first of all, to arrange
- his campaign.
- What would the boy naturally do? Where would he naturally go?
- Well- argued Miles- he would naturally go to his former haunts, for
- that is the instinct of unsound minds, when homeless and forsaken,
- as well as of sound ones. Whereabouts were his former haunts? His
- rags, taken together with the low villain who seemed to know him and
- who even claimed to be his father, indicated that his home was in
- one or other of the poorest and meanest districts of London. Would the
- search for him be difficult, or long? No, it was likely to be easy and
- brief. He would not hunt for the boy, he would hunt for a crowd; in
- the center of a big crowd or a little one, sooner or later he should
- find his poor little friend, sure; and the mangy mob would be
- entertaining itself with pestering and aggravating the boy, who
- would be proclaiming himself king, as usual. Then Miles Hendon would
- cripple some of those people, and carry off his little ward, and
- comfort and cheer him with loving words, and the two would never be
- separated any more.
- So Miles started on his quest. Hour after hour he tramped
- through back alleys and squalid streets, seeking groups and crowds,
- and finding no end of them, but never any sign of the boy. This
- greatly surprised him, but did not discourage him. To his notion,
- there was nothing the matter with his plan of campaign; the only
- miscalculation about it was that the campaign was becoming a lengthy
- one, whereas he had expected it to be short.
- When daylight arrived at last, he had made many a mile, and
- canvassed many a crowd, but the only result was that he was
- tolerably tired, rather hungry, and very sleepy. He wanted some
- breakfast, but there was no way to get it. To beg for it did not occur
- to him; as to pawning his sword, he would as soon have thought of
- parting with his honor; he could spare some of his clothes- yes, but
- one could as easily find a customer for a disease as for such clothes.
- At noon he was still tramping- among the rabble which followed
- after the royal procession now; for he argued that this regal
- display would attract his little lunatic powerfully. He followed the
- pageant through all its devious windings about London, and all the way
- to Westminster and the Abbey. He drifted here and there among the
- multitudes that were massed in the vicinity for a weary long time,
- baffled and perplexed, and finally wandered off thinking, and trying
- to contrive some way to better his plan of campaign. By and by, when
- he came to himself out of his musings, he discovered that the town was
- far behind him and that the day was growing old. He was near the
- river, and in the country; it was a region of fine rural seats- not
- the sort of district to welcome clothes like his.
- It was not at all cold; so he stretched himself on the ground in
- the lee of a hedge to rest and think. Drowsiness presently began to
- settle upon his senses; the faint and far-off boom of cannon was
- wafted to his ear, and he said to himself, 'The new king is
- crowned,' and straightway fell asleep. He had not slept or rested,
- before, for more than thirty hours. He did not wake again until near
- the middle of the next morning.
- He got up, lame, stiff, and half famished, washed himself in the
- river, stayed his stomach with a pint or two of water, and trudged off
- toward Westminster grumbling at himself for having wasted so much
- time. Hunger helped him to a new plan now; he would try to get
- speech with old Sir Humphrey Marlow and borrow a few marks, and- but
- that was enough of a plan for the present; it would be time enough
- to enlarge it when this first stage should be accomplished.
- Toward eleven o'clock he approached the palace; and although a
- host of showy people were about him, moving in the same direction,
- he was not inconspicuous- his costume took care of that. He watched
- these people's faces narrowly, hoping to find a charitable one whose
- possessor might be willing to carry his name to the old lieutenant- as
- to trying to get into the palace himself, that was simply out of the
- question.
- Presently our whipping-boy passed him, then wheeled about and
- scanned his figure well, saying to himself, 'An that is not the very
- vagabond his majesty is in such a worry about, then am I an ass-
- though belike I was that before. He answereth the description to a
- rag- that God should make two such, would be to cheapen miracles, by
- wasteful repetition. I would I could contrive an excuse to speak
- with him.'
- Miles Hendon saved him the trouble; for he turned about, then,
- as a man generally will when somebody mesmerizes him by gazing hard at
- him from behind; and observing a strong interest in the boy's eyes, he
- stepped toward him and said:
- 'You have just come out from the palace; do you belong there?'
- 'Yes, your worship.'
- 'Know you Sir Humphrey Marlow?'
- The boy started, and said to himself, 'Lord! mine old departed
- father!' Then he answered, aloud, 'Right well, your worship.'
- 'Good- is he within?'
- 'Yes,' said the boy; and added, to himself, 'within his grave.'
- Might I crave your favor to carry my name to him, and say I beg to
- say a word in his ear?'
- 'I will despatch the business right willingly, fair sir.'
- 'Then say Miles Hendon, son of Sir Richard, is here without- I
- shall be greatly bounden to you, my good lad.'
- The boy looked disappointed- 'the king did not name him so,' he
- said to himself- 'but it mattereth not, this is his twin brother,
- and can give his majesty news of t'other Sir-Odds-and-Ends, I
- warrant.' So he said to Miles, 'Step in there a moment, good sir,
- and wait till I bring you word.'
- Hendon retired to the place indicated- it was a recess sunk in the
- palace wall, with a stone bench in it- a shelter for sentinels in
- bad weather. He had hardly seated himself when some halberdiers, in
- charge of an officer, passed by. The officer saw him, halted his
- men, and commanded Hendon to come forth. He obeyed, and was promptly
- arrested as a suspicious character prowling within the precincts of
- the palace. Things began to look ugly. Poor Miles was going to
- explain, but the officer roughly silenced him, and ordered his men
- to disarm him and search him.
- 'God of his mercy grant that they find somewhat,' said poor Miles;
- 'I have searched enow, and failed, yet is my need greater than
- theirs.'
- Nothing was found but a document. The officer tore it open, and
- Hendon smiled when he recognized the 'pot-hooks' made by his lost
- little friend that black day at Hendon Hall. The officer's face grew
- dark as he read the English paragraph, and Miles blenched to the
- opposite color as he listened.
- 'Another new claimant of the crown!' cried the officer. 'Verily
- they breed like rabbits to-day. Seize the rascal, men, and see ye keep
- him fast while I convey this precious paper within and send it to
- the king.
- He hurried away, leaving the prisoner in the grip of the
- halberdiers.
- 'Now is my evil luck ended at last,' muttered Hendon, 'for I shall
- dangle at a rope's end for a certainty, by reason of that bit of
- writing. And what will become of my poor lad!- ah, only the good God
- knoweth.'
- By and by he saw the officer coming again, in a great hurry; so he
- plucked his courage together, purposing to meet his trouble as
- became a man. The officer ordered the men to loose the prisoner and
- return his sword to him; then bowed respectfully, and said:
- 'Please you, sir, to follow me.'
- Hendon followed, saying to himself, 'An I were not travelling to
- death and judgment, and so must needs economize in sin, I would
- throttle this knave for his mock courtesy.'
- The two traversed a populous court, and arrived at the grand
- entrance of the palace, where the officer, with another bow, delivered
- Hendon into the hands of a gorgeous official, who received him with
- profound respect and led him forward through a great hall, lined on
- both sides with rows of splendid flunkies (who made reverential
- obeisance as the two passed along, but fell into death-throes of
- silent laughter at our stately scarecrow the moment his back was
- turned), and up a broad staircase, among flocks of fine folk, and
- finally conducted him to a vast room, clove a passage for him
- through the assembled nobility of England, then made a bow, reminded
- him to take his hat off, and left him standing in the middle of the
- room, a mark for all eyes, for plenty of indignant frowns, and for a
- sufficiency of amused and derisive smiles.
- Miles Hendon was entirely bewildered. There sat the young king,
- under a canopy of state, five steps away, with his head bent down
- and aside, speaking with a sort of human bird of paradise- a duke,
- maybe; Hendon observed to himself that it was hard enough to be
- sentenced to death in the full vigor of life, without having this
- peculiarly public humiliation added. He wished the king would hurry
- about it- some of the gaudy people near by were becoming pretty
- offensive. At this moment the king raised his head slightly and Hendon
- caught a good view of his face. The sight nearly took his breath away!
- He stood gazing at the fair young face like one transfixed; then
- presently ejaculated:
- 'Lo, the lord of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows on his throne!'
- He muttered some broken sentences, still gazing and marveling;
- then turned his eyes around and about, scanning the gorgeous throng
- and the splendid saloon, murmuring, 'But these are real- verily
- these are real- surely it is not a dream.'
- He stared at the king again- and thought, 'Is it a dream?... or is
- he the veritable sovereign of England, and not the friendless poor Tom
- o' Bedlam I took him for- who shall solve me this riddle?'
- A sudden idea flashed in his eye, and he strode to the wall,
- gathered up a chair, brought it back, planted it on the floor, and sat
- down in it!
- A buzz of indignation broke out, a rough hand was laid upon him,
- and a voice exclaimed:
- 'Up, thou mannerless clown!- wouldst sit in the presence of the
- king?'
- The disturbance attracted his majesty's attention, who stretched
- forth his hand and cried out:
- 'Touch him not, it is his right!'
- The throng fell back, stupefied. The king went on:
- 'Learn ye all, ladies, lords and gentlemen, that this is my trusty
- and well-beloved servant, Miles Hendon, who interposed his good
- sword and saved his prince from bodily harm and possible death- and
- for this he is a knight, by the king's voice. Also learn, that for a
- higher service, in that he saved his sovereign stripes and shame,
- taking these upon himself, he is a peer of England, Earl of Kent,
- and shall have gold and lands meet for the dignity. More- the
- privilege which he hath just exercised is his by royal grant; for we
- have ordained that the chiefs of his line shall have and hold the
- right to sit in the presence of the majesty of England henceforth, age
- after age, so long as the crown shall endure. Molest him not.'
- Two persons, who, through delay, had only arrived from the country
- during this morning, and had now been in this room only five
- minutes, stood listening to these words and looking at the king,
- then at the scarecrow, then at the king again, in a sort of torpid
- bewilderment. These were Sir Hugh and the Lady Edith. But the new earl
- did not see them. He was still staring at the monarch, in a dazed way,
- and muttering:
- 'Oh, body o' me! This my pauper! This my lunatic! This is he
- whom I would show what grandeur was, in my house of seventy rooms
- and seven and twenty servants! This is he who had never known aught
- but rags for raiment, kicks for comfort, and offal for diet! This is
- he whom I adopted and would make respectable! Would God I had a bag to
- hide my head in!'
- Then his manners suddenly came back to him, and he dropped upon
- his knees, with his hands between the king's, and swore allegiance and
- did homage for his lands and titles. Then he rose and stood
- respectfully aside, a mark still for all eyes- and much envy, too.
- Now the king discovered Sir Hugh, and spoke out, with wrathful
- voice and kindling eye:
- 'Strip this robber of his false show and stolen estates, and put
- him under lock and key till I have need of him.'
- The late Sir Hugh was led away.
- There was a stir at the other end of the room now; the
- assemblage fell apart, and Tom Canty, quaintly but richly clothed,
- marched down, between these living walls, preceded by an usher. He
- knelt before the king, who said:
- 'I have learned the story of these past few weeks, and am well
- pleased with thee. Thou hast governed the realm with right royal
- gentleness and mercy. Thou hast found thy mother and thy sisters
- again? Good; they shall be cared for- and thy father shall hang, if
- thou desire it and the law consent. Know, all ye that hear my voice,
- that from this day, they that abide in the shelter of Christ's
- Hospital and share the king's bounty, shall have their minds and
- hearts fed, as well as their baser parts; and this boy shall dwell
- there, and hold the chief place in its honorable body of governors,
- during life. And for that he hath been a king, it is meet that other
- than common observance shall be his due; wherefore, note this his
- dress of state, for by it he shall be known, and none shall copy it;
- and wheresoever he shall come, it shall remind the people that he hath
- been royal, in his time, and none shall deny him his due of
- reverence or fail to give him salutation. He hath the throne's
- protection, he hath the crown's support, he shall be known and
- called by the honorable title of the King's Ward.'
- The proud and happy Tom Canty rose and kissed the king's hand, and
- was conducted from the presence. He did not waste any time, but flew
- to his mother, to tell her and Nan and Bet all about it and get them
- to help him enjoy the great news.*(22)
- CONCLUSION
- CONCLUSION
- Justice and Retribution
-
- WHEN the mysteries were all cleared up, it came out, by confession
- of Hugh Hendon, that his wife had repudiated Miles by his command that
- day at Hendon Hall- a command assisted and supported by the
- perfectly trustworthy promise that if she did not deny that he was
- Miles Hendon, and stand firmly to it, he would have her life;
- whereupon she said take it, she did not value it- and she would not
- repudiate Miles; then her husband said he would spare her life, but
- have Miles assassinated! This was a different matter; so she gave
- her word and kept it.
- Hugh was not prosecuted for his threats or for stealing his
- brother's estates and title, because the wife and brother would not
- testify against him- and the former would not have been allowed to
- do it, even if she had wanted to. Hugh deserted his wife and went over
- to the continent, where he presently died; and by and by the Earl of
- Kent married his relict. There were grand times and rejoicings at
- Hendon village when the couple paid their first visit to the Hall.
- Tom Canty's father was never heard of again.
- The king sought out the farmer who had been branded and sold as
- a slave, and reclaimed him from his evil life with the Ruffler's gang,
- and put him in the way of a comfortable livelihood.
- He also took that old lawyer out of prison and remitted his
- fine. He provided good homes for the daughters of the two Baptist
- women whom he saw burned at the stake, and roundly punished the
- official who laid the undeserved stripes upon Miles Hendon's back.
- He saved from the gallows the boy who had captured the stray
- falcon, and also the woman who had stolen the remnant of cloth from
- a weaver; but he was too late to save the man who had been convicted
- of killing a deer in the royal forest.
- He showed favor to the justice who had pitied him when he was
- supposed to have stolen a pig, and he had the gratification of
- seeing him grow in the public esteem and become a great and honored
- man.
- As long as the king lived he was fond of telling the story of
- his adventures, all through, from the hour that the sentinel cuffed
- him away from the palace gate till the final midnight when he deftly
- mixed himself into a gang of hurrying workmen and so slipped into
- the Abbey and climbed up and hid himself in the Confessor's tomb,
- and then slept so long, next day, that he came within one of missing
- the Coronation altogether. He said that the frequent rehearsing of the
- precious lesson kept him strong in his purpose to make its teachings
- yield benefits to his people; and so, while his life was spared he
- should continue to tell the story, and thus keep its sorrowful
- spectacles fresh in his memory and the springs of pity replenished
- in his heart.
- Miles Hendon and Tom Canty were favorites of the king, all through
- his brief reign, and his sincere mourners when he died. The good
- Earl of Kent had too much good sense to abuse his peculiar
- privilege; but he exercised it twice after the instance we have seen
- of it before he was called from the world; once at the accession of
- Queen Mary, and once at the accession of Queen Elizabeth. A descendant
- of his exercised it at the accession of James I. Before this one's son
- chose to use the privilege, near a quarter of a century had elapsed,
- and the 'privilege of the Kents' had faded out of most people's
- memories; so, when the Kent of that day appeared before Charles I
- and his court and sat down in the sovereign's presence to assert and
- perpetuate the right of his house, there was a fine stir, indeed!
- But the matter was soon explained and the right confirmed. The last
- earl of the line fell in the wars of the Commonwealth fighting for the
- king, and the odd privilege ended with him.
- Tom Canty lived to be a very old man, a handsome, white-haired old
- fellow, of grave and benignant aspect. As long as he lasted he was
- honored; and he was also reverenced, for his striking and peculiar
- costume kept the people reminded that 'in his time he had been royal';
- so, wherever he appeared the crowd fell apart, making way for him, and
- whispering, one to another, 'Doff thy hat, it is the King's Ward!'-
- and so they saluted, and got his kindly smile in return- and they
- valued it, too, for his was an honorable history.
- Yes, King Edward VI lived only a few years, poor boy, but he lived
- them worthily. More than once, when some great dignitary, some
- gilded vassal of the crown, made argument against his leniency, and
- urged that some law which he was bent upon amending was gentle
- enough for its purpose, and wrought no suffering or oppression which
- any one need mightily mind, the young king turned the mournful
- eloquence of his great compassionate eyes upon him and answered:
- 'What dost thou know of suffering and oppression! I and my
- people know, but not thou.'
- The reign of Edward VI was a singularly merciful one for those
- harsh times. Now that we are taking leave of him let us try to keep
- this in our minds, to his credit.
- NOTES
- NOTES
-
- * Christ's Hospital Costume. It is most reasonable to regard the
- dress as copied from the costume of the citizens of London of that
- period, when long blue coats were the common habit of apprentices
- and serving-men, and yellow stockings were generally worn; the coat
- fits closely to the body, but has loose sleeves, and beneath is worn a
- sleeveless yellow undercoat; around the waist is a red leathern
- girdle; a clerical band around the neck, and a small flat black cap,
- about the size of a saucer, completes the costume.- Timbs's
- 'Curiosities of London.'
-
- *(2) It appears that Christ's Hospital was not originally
- founded as a school; its object was to rescue children from the
- streets, to shelter, feed, clothe them, etc.- Timb's 'Curiosities of
- London.'
-
- *(3) The Duke of Norfolk's Condemnation Commanded. The King was
- now approaching fast toward his end; and fearing lest Norfolk should
- escape him, he sent a message to the Commons, by which he desired them
- to hasten the bill, on pretense that Norfolk enjoyed the dignity of
- earl marshal, and it was necessary to appoint another, who might
- officiate at the ensuing ceremony of installing his son Prince of
- Wales.- Hume, vol. iii, p. 307
-
- *(4) It was not till the end of this reign (Henry VIII) that any
- salads, carrots, turnips, or other edible roots were produced in
- England. The little of these vegetables that was used was formerly
- imported from Holland and Flanders. Queen Catherine, when she wanted a
- salad, was obliged to despatch a messenger thither on purpose.- Hume's
- History of England, vol. iii, p. 314.
-
- *(5) Attainder of Norfolk. The house of peers, without examining
- the prisoner, without trial or evidence, passed a bill of attainder
- against him and sent it down to the commons.... The obsequious commons
- obeyed his (the King's) directions; and the King, having affixed the
- royal assent to the bill by commissioners, issued orders for the
- execution of Norfolk on the morning of the twenty-ninth of January
- (the next day).- Hume's England, vol. iii, p. 306.
-
- *(6) The Loving-Cup. The loving-cup, and the peculiar ceremonies
- observed in drinking from it, are older than English history. It is
- thought that both are Danish importations. As far back as knowledge
- goes, the loving-cup has always been drunk at English banquets.
- Tradition explains the ceremonies in this way: in the rude ancient
- times it was deemed a wise precaution to have both hands of both
- drinkers employed, lest while the pledger pledged his love and
- fidelity to the pledgee the pledgee take that opportunity to slip a
- dirk into him!
-
- *(7) The Duke of Norfolks Narrow Escape. Had Henry VIII survived a
- few hours longer, his order for the duke's execution would have been
- carried into effect. 'But news being carried to the Tower that the
- King himself had expired that night, the lieutenant deferred obeying
- the warrant; and it was not thought advisable by the council to
- begin a new reign by the death of the greatest nobleman in the
- Kingdom, who had been condemned by a sentence so unjust and
- tyrannical.'- Hume's England, vol. iii, p 307.
-
- *(8) He refers to the order of baronets, or baronettes- the
- barones minor, as distinct from the parliamentary barons;- not, it
- need hardly be said, the baronets of later creation.
-
- *(9) The lords of Kingsale, descendants of De Courcy, still
- enjoy this curious privilege.
-
- *(10) Hume.
-
- *(11) Hume.
-
- *(12) The Whipping-Boy. James I and Charles II had whipping-boys
- when they were little fellows, to take their punishment for them
- when they fell short in their lessons; so I have ventured to furnish
- my small prince with one, for my own purposes.
-
- *(13) Character of Hertford. The young king discovered an
- extreme attachment to his uncle, who was, in the main, a man of
- moderation and probity.- Hume's England, vol. iii, p. 324.
- But if he (the Protector) gave offense by assuming too much state,
- he deserves great praise on account of the laws passed this session,
- by which the rigor of former statutes was much mitigated, and some
- security given to the freedom of the constitution. All laws were
- repealed which extended the crime of treason beyond the statute of the
- twenty-fifth of Edward III; all laws enacted during the late reign
- extending the crime of felony; all the former laws against Lollardy or
- heresy, together with the statute of the Six Articles. None were to be
- accused for words, but within a month after they were spoken. By these
- repeals several of the most rigorous laws that ever had passed in
- England were annulled; and some dawn, both of civil and religious
- liberty, began to appear to the people. A repeal also passed of that
- law, the destruction of all laws, by which the king's proclamation was
- made of equal force with a statute.- Ibid., vol. iii, p. 339.
- Boiling to Death. In the reign of Henry VIII, poisoners were, by
- act of parliament condemned to be boiled to death. This act was
- repealed in the following reign.
- In Germany, even in the 17th century, this horrible punishment was
- inflicted on coiners and counterfeiters. Taylor, the Water Poet,
- describes an execution he witnessed in Hamburg, in 1616. The judgement
- pronounced against a coiner of false money was that he should 'be
- boiled to death in oil: not thrown into the vessel at once, but with a
- pulley or rope to be hanged under the armpits, and then let down
- into the oil by degrees; first the feet, and next the legs, and so
- to boil his flesh from his bones alive.'- Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's
- 'Blue Laws, True and False,' p. 13.
- The Famous Stocking Case. A woman and her daughter, nine years
- old, were hanged in Huntingdon for selling their souls to the devil,
- and raising a storm by pulling off their stockings!- Ibid., p. 20.
-
- *(14) Leigh Hunt's The Town, p. 408, quotation from an early
- tourist.
-
- *(15) From 'The English Rogue': London, 1665.
-
- *(16) Canting terms for various kinds of thieves, beggars and
- vagabonds, and their female companions.
-
- *(17) Enslaving. So young a king, and so ignorant a peasant were
- likely to make mistakes- and this is an instance in point. This
- peasant was suffering from this law by anticipation; the king was
- venting his indignation against a law which was not yet in
- existence: for this hideous statute was to have birth in this little
- king's own reign. However, we know, from the humanity of his
- character, that it could never have been suggested by him.
-
- *(18) From 'The English Rogue': London, 1665.
-
- *(19) Death for Trifling Larcenies. When Connecticut and New Haven
- were framing their first codes, larceny above the value of twelve
- pence was a capital crime in England, as it had been since the time of
- Henry I.- Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's 'Blue Laws, True and False.' p.
- 17.
- The curious old book called The English Rogue makes the limit
- thirteen pence ha'penny; death being the portion of any who steal a
- thing 'above the value of thirteen pence ha'penny.'
-
- *(20) From many descriptions of larceny, the law expressly took
- away the benefit of clergy; to steal a horse, or a hawk, or woolen
- cloth from the weaver, was a hanging matter. So it was to kill a
- deer from the king's forest, or to export sheep from the Kingdom.- Dr.
- J. Hammond Trumbull's 'Blue Laws, True and False,' p. 13.
- William Prynne, a learned barrister, was sentenced- (long after
- Edward the Sixth's time)- to lose both his ears in the pillory; to
- degradation from the bar; a fine of L3,000, and imprisonment for life.
- Three years afterward, he gave new offense to Laud, by publishing a
- pamphlet against the hierarchy. He was again prosecuted, and was
- sentenced to lose what remained of his ears; to pay a fine of
- L5,000; to be branded on both his cheeks with the letters S. L. (for
- Seditious Libeler), and to remain in prison for life. The severity
- of this sentence was equaled by the savage rigor of its execution.-
- Ibid., p. 12.
-
- *(21) Hume's England.
-
- *(22) Christ's Hospital or Blue Coat Scbool, 'the Noblest
- Institution in the World.'
- The ground on which the Priory of the Grey Friars stood was
- conferred by Henry the Eighth on the Corporation of London (who caused
- the institution there of a home for poor boys and girls).
- Subsequently, Edward the Sixth caused the old Priory to be properly
- repaired, and founded within it that noble establishment called the
- Blue Coat School, or Christ's Hospital, for the education and
- maintenance of orphans and the children of indigent persons.... Edward
- would not let him (Bishop Ridley) depart till the letter was written
- (to the Lord Mayor), and then charged him to deliver it himself, and
- signify his special request and commandment that no time might be lost
- in proposing what was convenient, and apprising him of the
- proceedings. The work was zealously undertaken, Ridley himself
- engaging in it; and the result was, the founding of Christ's
- Hospital for the Education of Poor Children. (The king endowed several
- other charities at the same time.) 'Lord God,' said he, 'I yield
- thee most hearty thanks that thou hast given me life thus long, to
- finish this work to the glory of thy name!' That innocent and most
- exemplary life was drawing rapidly to its close, and in a few days
- he rendered up his spirit to his Creator, praying God to defend the
- realm from Papistry.- J. Heneage Jesse's 'London,its Celebrated
- Characters and Places.'
- In the Great Hall hangs a large picture of King Edward VI seated
- on his throne, in a scarlet and ermined robe, holding the scepter in
- his left hand, presenting with the other the Charter to the kneeling
- Lord Mayor. By his side stands the Chancellor, holding the seals,
- and next to him are other officers of state. Bishop Ridley kneels
- before him with uplifted hands, as if supplicating a blessing on the
- event; while the Aldermen, etc, with the Lord Mayor, kneel on both
- sides, occupying the middle ground of the picture; and lastly, in
- front, are a double row of boys on one side, and girls on the other,
- from the master and matron down to the boy and girl who have stepped
- forward from their respective rows, and kneel with raised hands before
- the king.- Timbs's 'Curiosities of London,' p. 98.
- Christ's Hospital, by ancient custom, possesses the privilege of
- addressing the Sovereign on the occasion of his or her coming into the
- City to partake of the hospitality of the Corporation of London.-
- Ibid.
- The Dining-Hall, with its lobby and organ-gallery, occupies the
- entire story, which is 187 feet long, 51 feet wide, and 47 feet
- high; it is lit by nine large windows, filled with stained glass on
- the south side; that is, next to Westminster Hall, the noblest room in
- the metropolis. Here the boys, now about 800 in number, dine; and here
- are held the 'Suppings in Public,' to which visitors are admitted by
- tickets, issued by the Treasurer and by the Governors of Christ's
- Hospital. The tables are laid with cheese in wooden bowls; beer in
- wooden piggins, poured from leathern jacks; and bread brought in large
- baskets. The official company enter; the Lord Mayor, or President,
- takes his seat in a state chair, made of oak from St. Catherine's
- Church by the Tower; a hymn is sung, accompanied by the organ; a
- 'Grecian,' or head boy, reads the prayers from the pulpit, silence
- being enforced by three drops of a wooden hammer. After prayer the
- supper commences, and the visitors walk between the tables. At its
- close, the 'trade-boys' take up the baskets, bowls, jacks, piggins,
- and candlesticks, and pass in procession, the bowing to the
- Governors being curiously formal. This spectacle was witnessed by
- Queen Victoria and Prince Albert in 1845.
- Among the more eminent Blue Coat Boys are Joshua Bames, editor
- of Anacreon and Euripides; Jeremiah Markland, the eminent critic,
- particularly in Greek literature; Camden, the antiquary; Bishop
- Stillingfleet; Samuel Richardson, the novelist; Thomas Mitchell, the
- translator of Aristophanes; Thomas Barnes, many years editor of the
- London Times; Coleridge, Charles Lamb, and Leigh Hunt.
- No boy is admitted before he is seven years old, or after he is
- nine; and no boy can remain in the school after he is fifteen,
- King's boys and 'Grecians' alone excepted. There are about 500
- Governors, at the head of whom are the Sovereign and the Prince of
- Wales. The qualification for a Governor is payment of L500.- Ibid.
- GENERAL NOTE
- One hears much about the 'hideous Blue-Laws of Connecticut,' and
- is accustomed to shudder piously when they are mentioned. There are
- people in America- and even in England!- who imagine that they were
- a very monument of malignity, pitilessness, and inhumanity; whereas,
- in reality they were about the first sweeping departure from judicial
- atrocity which the 'civilized' world had seen. This humane and kindly
- Blue-Law code, of two hundred and forty years ago, stands all by
- itself, with ages of bloody law on the further side of it, and a
- century and three-quarters of bloody English law on this side of it.
- There has never been a time- under the Blue-Laws or any other-
- when above fourteen crimes were punishable by death in Connecticut.
- But in England, within the memory of men who are still hale in body
- and mind, two hundred and twenty-three crimes were punishable by
- death!* These facts are worth knowing- and worth thinking about, too.
-
- * See Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's Blue Laws, True and False, p. 11.
-
- THE END
-